Вы находитесь на странице: 1из 128

ADR

(based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 1



Membership.............................................................23
Governing bodies .....................................................23
Contents
World Council......................................................23
Executive Board ...................................................24
I. INTRODUCTION ...................................................... 2
International Secretariat .....................................24
1.1 BRIEF DESCRIPTION OF ADR SYSTEM .... 2
National Committees ..........................................24
Alternative Dispute Resolution (ADR) ......................... 2
Finance Committee .............................................24
1.2 BASIC PRINCIPLE OF ADR ......................... 2
Dispute Resolution Services ....................................24
1.3 UNDERSTANDING DISPUTE
RESOLUTION OPTIONS .......................................... 3 Policy and business practices ..................................24

1.4 Advantages/Benefits and Disadvantages of 2.2.3 INTERNATIONAL CENTER FOR


Alternative Dispute Resolution ................................. 5 SETTLEMENT OF INVESTMENT DISPUTES
(ICSID) (CONVENTION ON THE SETTLEMENT
1.4.1 Benefits of ADR ..................................... 5 OF INESTMENT DISPUTE BETWEEN STATES
1.4.2 Disadvantages of ADR .........................8 AND NATIONALS OF OTHER STATES) ...........24
1.4.3 BENEFITS OF ALTERNATIVE 2.2.4 UNITED NATIONS COMMISSION
DISPUTE RESOLUTION ...................................... 9 FOR INTERNATIONAL TRADE LAW
(UNICITRAL MODEL LAW ON INTRNATIONAL
1.5 COMPARISON BETWEEN Litigation AND
COMMERCIAL ARBITRATION-1985) ..............26
ADR 10
History .....................................................................26
1.5.1 Litigation (Court Based Adjudication) 10
Membership.............................................................26
1.5.2 Alternative Dispute Resolution (ADR)
10 Conventions ............................................................. 27
1.5.3 Litigation and ADR Contrasted ...........11 Model laws ............................................................... 27
1.6 LIMITATION OF ADR IN GENERAL .........11 CLOUT (Case Law on UNCITRAL Texts) ............... 27
1.7 SUBJECT OF ADR .......................................11 2.2.5 WORLD TRADE ORGANIZATION
(MARRAKESH AGREEMENT) (DISPUTE
2 INTERNATIONAL ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE
SETTLEMENT UNDERSTANDING) ................. 27
RESOLUTION/ PEACEFUL SETTLEMENT OF
INTERNATIONAL DISPUTE ..................................... 17 2.3 ENFORCEMENT AND RECOGNITION OF
AWARDS .................................................................36
2.1 INTRODUCTION TO PUBLIC
INTERNATIONAL LAW AND PRIVATE Convention on the Recognition and Enforcement of
INTERNATIONAL LAW ......................................... 17 Foreign Arbitral Awards ..............................................36
Public international law .............................................. 17 Contents ...................................................................36
Private international law ............................................. 17 Background ..............................................................36
Conflicts between public international law and Summary of provisions ........................................... 37
national sovereignty ................................................... 17 Parties to the New York Convention ....................... 37
2.1.1 BASIC PRINCIPLES OF United States Issues ................................................ 37
INTERNATIONAL LAW (SOVEREIGNTY,
JURISDICTION, INDEPENDENCE etc.) ........... 18 2.4 TYPES OF ADR .......................................... 38

2.1.1.1 Sovereignty ................................................. 18 2.4.1 1. Negotiation ..................................... 38

2.1.1.3 Independence .............................................. 19 2.4.2 Assisted negotiation ........................... 38

2.1.2 ARTICLE 33 PARAGRAPH 1 OF THE 2.4.3 2. Mediation ....................................... 38


UN CHARTER ..................................................... 21 2.4.4 3. Conciliation .................................... 38
2.1.3 INTERNATIONAL COURT OF 2.4.5 4. Arbitration ...................................... 38
JUSTICE 21
Case presentation or mini-trial ........................... 41
2.2 RELEVANT ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE
Independent expert appraisal or early neutral
SETTLEMENT INSTITUTIONS ............................. 21
evaluation ............................................................ 41
2.2.2 INTERNATIONAL COURT OF
Litigation ............................................................. 41
ARBITRATION (INTERNATIONAL CHAMBER
OF COMMERCE) ................................................23 2.4.6 5. INQUIRY AND FACT FINDING..... 41
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 2

2.4.7 6. GOOD OFFICES .............................. 41 A type of dispute resolution that seeks to limit the costs
of litigation by using alternative, often out-of-court
3 DOMESTIC ARBITRATION ............................... 41
means, such as arbitration, conciliation and summary
3.1 INTRODUCTION TO DOMESTIC possession proceedings. Alternative dispute
COMMERCIAL DISPUTE RESOLUTION .............. 41 resolutionoptions are voluntary, and often involve a
3.2 ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE RESOLUTION neutral third party to make decisions.2
ACT OF 2004 ........................................................... 41
1.1 BASIC PRINCIPLE OF ADR
Republic Act No. 9285............................................. 41
ADR is based on several key principles. First,
April 2, 2004............................................................ 41 consensual processes (participation, scope and
structure) are more likely to result in outcomes
3.3 REPUBLIC ACT NO. 876 ARBITRATION
satisfactory to the disputants than a solution
LAW OF THE PHILIPPINES ................................. 50 imposed by a court. Inherent in this principle
3.4 A.M. No. 07-11-08-SC SPECIAL is the ability of the parties to structure a
RULES OF COURT ON ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE process that is tailored to the situation and to
the dispute at hand. There is ample experience
RESOLUTION September 1, 2009......................... 55
demonstrating that disputants are more likely
3.5 DEPARTMENT CIRCULAR NO. 98 ........... 87 to achieve outcomes that serve all disputants
interests and purposes -- the win/win
3.6 OTHER SC ISSUANCES ON ADR ............ 126 solution -- than solutions imposed by an
3.7 JUDICIAL DISPUTE RESOLUTION........ 126 outside decision maker.

Judicial dispute resolution (JDR) ............................. 126 The second key principle is the involvement of
a third-party neutral whose presence can
improve the dynamics of the dialogue needed
I. INTRODUCTION to achieve a settlement and, in environmental
disputes, knowledge and expertise to evaluate
BRIEF DESCRIPTION OF ADR SYSTEM the merits and to help frame options for
Alternative Dispute Resolution (ADR) solution if so desired by the parties. The third
also known as external dispute resolution in some partys role is to assist in the process, not to
countries, such as Australia includes dispute resolution dictate the outcome. This individual is neutral
in the sense of having no stake in the outcome
processes and techniques that act as a means for
disagreeing parties to come to an agreement short of or in the parties. A third-party neutral has no
litigation. It is a collective term for the ways that authority except as granted under the order or
agreement defining the ADR process.
parties can settle disputes, with (or without) the help
of a third party.
Despite historic resistance to ADR by many popular One of the principal objectives of the ADR
process is to help the parties communicate
parties and their advocates, ADR has gained
with each other civilly, by providing a clear
widespread acceptance among both the general public statement of the interests driving the dispute
and the legal profession in recent years. In fact, some and, most importantly, by truly listening to the
courts now require some parties to resort to ADR of other side of the dispute. Parties often lack a
some type, usually mediation, before permitting the clear idea of what they are fighting for, much
parties' cases to be tried (indeed the European less a good idea of what needs are driving their
Mediation Directive (2008) expressly contemplates so- opponents.
called "compulsory" mediation; attendance that is, not
Finally, ADR processes generally are
settlement at mediation).
confidential except as otherwise agreed by the
parties, with the exception of public policy
The rising popularity of ADR can be explained by the
disputes that often facilitate in full public view.
increasing caseload of traditional courts, the Agreements to engage in most ADR processes
perception that ADR imposes fewer costs than typically have a confidentiality clause.
litigation, a preference for confidentiality, and the Mediation conducted in Michigan court
desire of some parties to have greater control over the proceedings is expressly made confidential by
selection of the individual or individuals who will MCR 2.411(C)(5). As of mid 2010, the
confidentiality provisions under MCR 2.411
decide their dispute.
are being considered for revision. SCAO
August 2010 Report on MCR 2.411.
Some of the senior judiciary in certain jurisdictions (of
which England and Wales is one) are strongly in favor
When the ADR process is not ordered under
of the use of mediation to settle disputes.1 MCR 2.411, the parties must provide for
confidentiality by agreement. Where disputes


2
http://www.businessdictionary.com/definition/alternative-dispute-
resolution.html#ixzz204cSk0Xz
1
http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Alternative_dispute_resolution
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 3

are mediated before or during civil litigation, Most ADR processes require confidentiality so that the
MRE 408 and FRE 408 make settlement offers parties' fundamental interests can be explored.
and conduct and statements made in
settlement negotiations (i.e., during the ADR COMMISSION APPROVAL
process), not admissible. These rules, however,
do not require the exclusion of evidence The CPUC will expeditiously approve settlements that
otherwise discoverable merely because it is are legally sufficient.4
presented in the course of settlement
discussions.
1.2 UNDERSTANDING DISPUTE
The Michigan mediation rule expressly RESOLUTION OPTIONS
provides that a mediator may not disclose There are many ways to approach dispute resolution.
anything that transpired during the mediation
The great majority of problems encountered by small
to the trial judge except the date of completion
of the process, who participated in the business are resolved through simple discussion and
mediation, whether settlement was reached common sense between the parties and do not escalate
and whether further ADR proceedings are into a dispute.
contemplated. MCR 2.411(C)(3). Best practice
in drafting the mediation agreement should In virtually all instances, small businesses should at
provide the express requirement that the first attempt to resolve their disputes through direct
mediator make his or her report to the court in discussion and negotiation.
writing with copies to the parties, so that the
parties can be assured this rule has been Disputes will occur, however, where there is a lack of
observed. Note that this rule does not permit
communication, where there are unrealistic
the mediator to report to the trial court
whether any party appeared to be acting in expectations or where there is a grievance that cannot
good faith. be resolved through direct discussion.

Likewise, communications made during ADR When a dispute occurs, each party has a choice about
processes convened by a federal court are the dispute resolution method that they would like to
protected from disclosure, 28 USC 652(d), pursue. Unfortunately, litigation is usually the norm
although the scope of the protection is not as and dispute resolution is often approached as a matter
broad as under the Michigan Court Rules. 3 between lawyers and the Courts. There are, however, a
variety of other approaches available which may save
time and money and preserve business relationships.
In its August 2005 resolution (Resolution ALJ-185),
Dispute resolution options for small business range
the Commission announced five basic principles that
from negotiation-based methods, where the parties
are the foundation of the CPUC ADR program:
have full control over the outcome (generally known as
VOLUNTARY 'alternative dispute resolution' - ADR), to adversarial
methods where the parties have less control over the
The parties usually must agree to submit their dispute outcome (such as arbitration and litigation). Where a
to mediation or early neutral evaluation. An ALJ, negotiated settlement is reached through ADR, the
however, may require parties to attend facilitated terms of the settlement, once agreed and signed by the
workshops, settlement conferences, or meet with a parties, are legally binding and can be enforced if
neutral to explore the feasibility of mediation. necessary.

TIMELINESS The chart below sets out some of the advantages and
disadvantages of different approaches to dispute
ADR should shorten, not prolong, proceedings. But resolution.
even if a negotiated settlement takes longer, the result
may be more beneficial to all.

GOOD FAITH

Those who engage in ADR should do so in an attempt DISADVANTAGE


ADVANTAGES METHOD
to reach agreement--not to delay or secure tactical S
advantage.
Parties Alternativ Does Not
CONFIDENTIALITY Control
e Dispute Establish
Outcome Resolutio Legal


3 4
http://envdeskbook.org/CH19/Ch19ADR.htm#_Toc325551391 http://www.cpuc.ca.gov/PUC/ADR/adrprinciples.htm
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 4

judge or arbitrator imposes a decision which
Time - n (ADR) Precedent may be disappointing for one or both parties.
Efficient Not Open
Cost - To Public A mediator is appointed by the parties to help
Efficient Scrutiny establish effective communication and by
doing so find a solution which satisfies both
Confidenti
their needs and interests. The informal process
al
is speedy and cost effective and caters for on-
going business relationships.
Maintains
Business Not
Appropriate INTERMEDIATION
Relationsh
For Fraud Similar to Mediation in concept but more
ips
Or Criminal sophisticated. The neutral third party closely
Non- Behaviour interacts with the parties in dispute to assess
Adversaria all relevant material, identify key issues, and
l, Informal most importantly, helps to design a process
Process that will lead to resolution of the dispute.

Appropriat The process involves separate meetings with


Parties
e For the parties at their offices to conduct extensive
Have
Fraud Or reality testing, and analysis of parties' legal,
Limited
Criminal commercial and financial positions. The
Control
Matters process utilises creative thinking techniques
Over The
and is suitable for more complex, large or
Can Adversal Outcome
Establish a sensitive matters.
Approach High Cost &
Legal es Lengthy FACILITATION
Precedent Process The parties appoint a neutral facilitator to
Appropriat litigation
May manage the dispute resolution process,
e Where arbitratio
n Destroy identify issues and apply specialist techniques
One Party to achieve the desired outcome. The facilitator
Business
Has No assists by preparing an agenda, chairing
Relationshi
Intention meetings, distributing relevant information
ps
Of between the parties and steering them to reach
Complianc agreed objectives. The process is less formal
e and more flexible than Mediation. It has wide
application and is often used where there are
several parties or groups involved with
AN EXPLANATION OF ALTERNATIVE differing points of view, such as creditors or
DISPUTE RESOLUTION METHODS multi-party claimants, joint venture
negotiations, and environmental and planning
disputes.
ASSISTED NEGOTIATION
The parties engage a professional negotiator or
EXPERT DETERMINATION/RECOMMENDATION
'go-between' to assist parties reach a desired
result. It is usually informal and the negotiator The parties agree to an independent expert to
can either be appointed by one party or both. provide a report on specific aspects of a
In the latter situation he/she is a joint dispute by examining relevant documentation
negotiator. This method is often helpful in and material. The expert is usually
smaller disputes where parties are still talking commissioned to report on technical matters
to one another and need help to break an such as standards, compliance, quality
impasse, and where they have identified all the specifications, quantification of loss or similar
issues to be negotiated. issues. The expert may be asked to provide a
recommendation or a determination on the
matter depending on the circumstances.
MEDIATION
Mediation is a process where an independent
PARTNERING
person is used to assist the parties in dispute
to find a mutually acceptable solution. The Often used for long term contracts or in the
mediator will systematically work through the building/construction industries and in joint
issues, help identify alternatives, and facilitate venture type projects. A Partnering agreement
final agreement. The process is non- or charter is based on the parties' need to act
adversarial and focuses on the parties' in good faith and with fair dealing to one
resolving the dispute themselves using the another. The Partnering process focuses on the
skills of a mediator. The key principle of definition of mutual objectives, improved
mediation is that the parties work together to communication, the identification of likely
arrive at an agreement that suits both. This is problems and development of formal problem
in contrast to litigation and arbitration where a solving and dispute resolution strategies. It is
useful, for example, where there is a need to
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 5

complete a technical or building project with a Parties choice of neutral third party (and
minimum of disruption and cost and within a therefore expertise in area of dispute) to
tight time frame.
direct negotiations/adjudicate
Likelihood and speed of settlements
AN EXPLANATION OF ADVERSARIAL Practical solutions tailored to parties
DISPUTE RESOLUTION METHODS interests and needs (not rights and wants,as
they may perceive them)
LITIGATION
Litigation is an adversarial legal process
Durability of agreements
conducted in a Court of law, in accordance Confidentiality
with strict procedures, where the parties The preservation of relationships;[11] and
present legal arguments and evidence to the preservation of reputations.5
support their claims before a judge. The judge
applies the relevant law to the evidence,
The international literature on ADR identifies five
resulting in a judgement in favour of one of the
major outcomes from ADR. They are:
parties involved.

ARBITRATION increased settlement


Arbitration is an adversarial process, agreed by improved satisfaction with the outcome or
the parties in dispute, in which each party manner in which the dispute is resolved
presents legal arguments and evidence, in among disputants
accordance with formal procedures, to a reduced time in dispute
mutually agreed arbitrator. The arbitrator reduced costs in relating to the dispute
makes a determination in favour of one of the resolution
parties. This determination is usually legally increased compliance with agreed solutions.
binding.
Among stakeholders there is broad agreement that
dispute resolution throughADR mechanisms can be
1.3 Advantages/Benefits and beneficial. Nevertheless, there are some significant
variations among stakeholders about the extent and
Disadvantages of Alternative nature of those benefits for disputants. ADR
Dispute Resolution practitioners are most enthusiastic about the benefits
of ADRtake-up. Lawyers and disputants tend to be
more qualified with regard to the actual benefits
The take-up of ADR depends on a combination of three
associated with ADR.
critical factors. First, the extent to which disputants
and their advisors are aware of ADR. Second, the
adequacy of the supply of ADR services for those that ADR Practitioners' View of ADR Benefits
would wish to take-up ADRservices. Third, the
perceived advantages and disadvantages of ADR. Participants in the ADR Practitioners Survey were
convinced of the efficacyof ADR techniques in
This section is concerned primarily with the third of resolving disputes that were already or could be filed in
those factors. It notes, however, the low level of the District or High Courts. Two thirds of the
awareness of ADR among disputants, the critical and respondents (66 percent) reported that they believed
influential position of lawyers in determining whether that more that 80 percent of disputes could be resolved
disputants seek resolution through ADR, and through ADR. Only 4 percent reported that they
comments on the extent to which the court system believed that 55 percent or fewer disputes were
raises awareness about the potential for ADR as a amenable to effective resolution through ADR (Table
dispute resolution pathway. 4.1).

ADR Practitioners' Estimates of Disputes


1.3.1 Benefits of ADR Effectively Settled by ADR(ADR Practitioners
Survey n=139)*
ADR has been both; increasingly used alongside,
and integrated formally, into legal systems Proportion of Disputes Settled by ADRPractitioners
internationally in order to capitalise on the typical ADR Responses %
advantages of ADR over litigation: 0-20 percent of disputes 0 0
21-30 percent of disputes 1 <1
Suitability for multi-party disputes 31-40 percent of disputes 0 0
Flexibility of procedure - the process is 41-50 percent of disputes 4 3
determined and controlled by the parties 51-60 percentof disputes 9 6
the dispute
Lower costs
Less complexity ("less is more") 5
http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Alternative_dispute_resolution#Benefits
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 6

61-70 percent of disputes 5 4 relationship
71-80 percent of disputes 28 20 Desire for compromise
82 41.8
81-90 percent of disputes 32 23 solution
91-100 percent of disputes 60 43 Desire for more control over
80 40.8
process and outcome
Privacy and confidentiality 74 37.8
* Six missing cases.
Directed by contract, statute
61 31.1
It was noted in the ADR practitioner focus groups, or existing agreement
however, that not all ADRtechniques generated Desire for creative solution 48 24.5
benefits in the same way or to the same extent. A Concerns about court
strong distinction was made between mediation and 39 19.9
procedures [8]
arbitration. Table 4.2 represents ADRpractitioners'
assessment of the relative potential of arbitration and
mediation in relation to the benefits typically * Multiple response.
associated with ADR.
Mediation and negotiation are seen as more likely than
ADR Practitioner Views on the Relative arbitration to generate ADR benefits including:
Potential of Arbitration and Mediation
increased opportunities to resolve a dispute in
Arbitration Mediation a way satisfactory to the parties
increased likelihood of the parties complying
Low- Medium-
Reduced financial costs with the remedies or solutions generated
Medium High
through ADR
Flexible solution Low High reductions in time delays
Confidentiality High High reductions in costs, and
Ability to influence maintenance of confidentiality about both the
Low High dispute, the remedies sought and the
outcome
outcomes.
Disputant control Medium High
Medium-
Disputants satisfaction Low-High For lawyers, reaping the potential benefits of ADR is by
High no means straightforward. For most lawyers the
Speedy resolution High High effectiveness of ADR is contingent on two major
factors. Firstly, the willingness of disputants to engage
ADR practitioners see the real benefits of arbitration in a resolution process, and, secondly, the experience
lying in the abilityof the disputants to select an of the ADR practitioners (Table 4.3).
arbitrator by mutual agreement and the considerable
specialist expertise an arbitrator may bring to the Lawyers' Perceptions of Determinants of ADR
resolution of a dispute with substantial technical Efficacy (Lawyers Survey)
components. It is for the latter reason that arbitrators
have so frequently been used in technical sectors such Lawyers
as the building industry. Lawyers Lawyers Working
Working Working Equally
Lawyers' Perceptions of ADR Benefits Perceived Primarily Primarily in High
Total
Determinant in District in High Court and
The majority of lawyers believe that disputants seek Court Court District
ADR resolution ofdisputes in an effort to: (n=74) (n=64) Court
(n=58)
reduce the cost of a dispute Disputant
76.0% 80.8% 78.1% 69.0%
speed resolution, and willingness
reduce uncertainty around the outcome of Experienced
judgment in the court system (Table 4.2). ADR 62.8% 68.5% 60.0% 66.1%
practitioner
Lawyers' Perceptions of Disputants' Reasons Supportive
for ADR Take-up* (Lawyers Survey) 40.3% 37.5% 40.6% 45.6%
counsel
Judicial
Perceived Disputant % of Lawyers 14.8% 21.9% 10.9% 10.7%
Responses support
Reason (n=196)
Ongoing
Want to reduce costs 183 93.4 relationship
14.3% 13.7% 15.6% 14.3%
Want speedy resolution 159 81.1 between
Uncertainty of court outcome 142 72.4 disputants

Preservation of ongoing 86 43.9


ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 7

The quantitative data does indicate some of the hesitant and uncomfortable about ADR, disputants in
subtleties around this issue, however, in relation to the retrospectoften find the experience very useful. This
importance of judicial and counsel support as factors view is consistent with the findingsof the disputant
in the efficacy of ADR. Overall, 40.3 percent of lawyers research project.
saw counsel support as an important determinant.
Lawyers working in the High Court or equally in the Disputants' Perceptions of ADR Benefits
District Court and High Court were over-represented
among those who saw counsel support as an important
In-depth interviews with 60 disputants with civil cases
factor. Lawyers working primarily in the District Court
filed with the court system in the 2000-2002 period
were significantly more likely than lawyers working
revealed that only fourteen used ADR to help resolve
primarily in the High Court to see judicial support as
their dispute.
an important factor in the efficacy ofADR.
As shows, settlement was achieved in eleven of those
It is unclear why those differences emerge. The lawyer
cases throughADR and for a further case ADR resolved
survey data suggests that there may be some
some issues. Eleven of those fourteen disputants
relationship between the ADR skills and experience
reported that they would use ADR if ADR was 'suited'
oflawyers and the extent to which they perceive the
to the nature ofthe dispute.
importance of their own role in encouraging effective
ADR. The High Court lawyers are more likely to be
trained in and/or engaged in delivering ADR services Disputant Views on ADR's Contribution to
than the lawyers working primarily in the District Resolution of their Dispute (Disputant In-
Court (Table 4.4). depth Interviews n=14)

ADR Training* and ADR Practice Among ADR's Contribution to Resolving the
Interviewees
Lawyers (Lawyers Survey) Case
The case settled as a result of ADR 11
Lawyers ADR did not lead to settlement 2
Lawyers Lawyers Working ADR resolved some issues in the case 1
Working Working Equally in
Total 14
Primarily Primarily in High Court
in District HighCourt and District
Court (n=74) (n=64) Court Overall, thirty of the sixty disputant interviewees had
(n=58) had some experienceof using ADR to resolve a dispute.
N % N % N % A further twenty disputants knew of ADR. Forty-nine
of the sixty disputants involved in in-depth interviews
Combines legal
felt able to make some comment about the advantages
practice with 8 10.8 17 26.6 12 20.7 and disadvantages of ADR. It is clear that ADR is seen
ADR Practice as a less costly approach to dispute resolution than
Trained having the dispute resolved through a judgment given
LEADR by the Court. Almost as many see ADRas a
2 2.7 13 20.3 3 5.2
Accreditation comparatively faster mechanism for dispute resolution
Workshop (Table 4.6).
AMINZ
Associate or 3 4.1 2 3.1 6 10.3 Disputant Views on the Advantages of ADR
Fellow Identified by Interviewees (Disputant In-depth
Interviews n=49)*
Massey
University
Dispute 1 1.4 0 0.0 1 1.7 Responses %
ADR Advantages
Resolution (n=49)* ofInterviewees
Diploma Cheaper resolution 30 61.2
Dispute Faster resolution 27 55.1
Resolution More control 8 16.3
1 1.4 1 1.6 1 1.7
paper(s) as
Informal
part of LLB
process/relaxed/less 6 12.2
On-goingADR stressful
training -
4 5.4 8 12.5 4 6.9 More creative solutions 5 10.2
workshops,
seminars etc Other 5 10.2
Preserves relationships 3 6.1
* Multiple response.
* Multiple response.
In relation to the willingness of the disputants, it was
also noted by manyADR practitioners, lawyers and the
judiciary that although disputants may initially feel
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 8

1.3.2 Disadvantages of ADR Some concern was expressed that if that type of
approach became prevalent, or the dominant
perception of mediation, there would be a backlash
There was widespread support across stakeholders for against mediation, a hesitancy to take-up mediation
the use of ADRtechniques to resolve disputes. ADR opportunities, and a failure to capture the potential
was not always seen as an alternative to resolution benefits of mediation such as solution flexibility,
through the courts, however. Moreover, even the most reduction in stress and relationship repair.
enthusiastic supporters of ADR - ADR practitioners -
still saw some potential disadvantagesfor disputants in Lawyers' Views on the Disadvantagesof ADR
using ADR.
For lawyers concerns about ADR focus on three issues.
ADR Practitioners' Views on the Those are whether ADR:
Disadvantages of ADR
delivers reduced costs and increases timeliness
Unlike other stakeholders, ADR practitioners tended to
delivers a sound and fair outcome, and
see any disadvantagesof ADR for disputants as being
related primarily to the particular ADR technique used generates agreements that can be sustained
or the methods by which ADR techniques are and enforced.
implemented.
Lawyers were directly involved in two of the
It has already been noted that ADR practitioners, like stakeholders research projects. Some of the ADR
lawyers and disputants, see arbitration as a less practitioners were lawyers and some practising lawyers
attractive ADR technique than mediation. It should were participants in the ADR practitioner research
also be recognised, however, that even within project as well as the lawyers' research project.
mediation, some processes are seen as more likely to
achieve all the benefits claimed for ADRthan others. What emerged from the lawyer and ADR practitioner
research projects as well as the disputant research
ADR practitioners recognise that mediation may project was that lawyers have, perhaps more than
anyof the other stakeholder groups, a diversity of views
encompass a variety of models, ranging from
developing consensual solutions to risk management around the merits and potential problems of ADR. In
or evaluative models for dispute resolution. As Boulle particular there is a view among some lawyers
thatADR both delays dispute resolution and increases
notes, mediation is:
costs. Increased cost was seen by lawyers participating
in the lawyers' survey as a particular limitation
"a decision-making process in which the parties are ofarbitration. Delay was seen as a particular problem
assisted by a third-party, the mediator; the mediator associated with mediation.
attempts to improve the process ofdecision-making
and to assist the parties reach an outcome to which
As shows only a minority of lawyers participating in
each of them can consent". [9]
the lawyers' survey saw significant limitations with
ADR techniques. It is notable that the pattern of those
Many ADR practitioners believed the full range of minority concerns differed in relation to arbitration
potential benefits, especially those related to increased and mediation respectively. With regard to arbitration
user satisfaction with outcomes and compliance with a substantial minority oflawyers expressed concern
ADR resolutions, were less likely to be achieved where that arbitration increased the costs of dispute
mediation focused on risk assessment, cost-benefit resolution. By comparison, with regard to mediation
review, or evaluation of the likelihoodof success in the most substantial minority of lawyers expressed
court rather than consensual solution development. concern that mediation could be used as a delaying
tactic. A smaller but still substantial minority of
Many ADR practitioners, both those who combine lawyers expressed concerns about mediation's
their ADR practice with legal practice and those who enforceability.
do not, expressed considerable concern at techniques
directed primarily at trading-off the probability of Limitations of Arbitration and Mediation
success in court. This was perceived as particularly (Lawyers Survey)
prevalent in the Auckland region and was
characterised by some ADR practitioners as a model
which allowed disputants to be 'bullied'. It was a model Limitations of Limitations of
that some found antithetical to what they believed to Arbitration Mediation
Key
be the core philosophical values of mediation and the (n=196)* (n=196)*
ADRLimitatio
core elements which led to better quality solutions - % of % of
n Response Response
the empowerment of the disputants, and the Lawyer Lawyer
expectation that disputants should take responsibility s s
s s
for mutually generating and committing to consensual
Enforceability 17 8.7 54 27.6
solutions.
Delaying tactics 35 17.9 74 37.8
A trading-off approach in mediation was perceived by Increased Costs 80 40.8 35 17.9
ADR practitioners to be particularly widespread in
disputes around insurance and employment matters.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 9

* Multiple response. Twelve of 49 disputants stated that they saw only
advantages and no disadvantages associated with
Only a minority of the lawyers participating in the ADR.6
lawyers' survey expressed concerns about those issues.
However, the disputants research does reveal how 1.3.3 BENEFITS OF ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE
powerful lawyers' views can be in relation to take-up of
ADR. A small group ofdisputants were explicitly RESOLUTION7
advised by their lawyer not to take-up ADR on the Cost:
grounds that it was too expensive or ADR would be
ineffective. Some disputants assumed that if lawyer-to- One of the largest reasons parties choose to resolve
lawyer informal discussion had failed to resolve the their disputes outside of the courts is cost. Alternative
dispute then ADR would simply not be an option. dispute resolution usually costs much less than
litigation, allowing smaller financial disputes a
Overall, however, surveyed lawyers tended to be financially viable way to be settled.
supportive of ADR. Indeed, among the lawyers
participating in the lawyers' survey around 64.4 Speed:
percent accepted the notion that there might be merit
in the court ordering parties to take-up ADR prior to ADR can be scheduled by the parties and the panelist
proceeding with a case. It is notable, however, that
as soon as they are able to meet. Compared to the court
only 22.2 percent of the participant lawyers felt court
orders to arbitration were acceptable, compared to process, where waits of 2-3 years are normal, dispute
53.7 percent who accepted the notion of the courts resolution is as fast as the parties want it to be.
ordering parties to mediation.
Control:
Even among lawyers who believed the benefits of ADR
were such as to justify some mechanism by which the The parties control some of the process; selecting what
courts could order parties to mediation, there was still method of ADR they want to follow, selecting the
a concern that ADR should not be promoted in a panelist for their dispute resolution; the length of the
manner that compromised litigants' access to justice. process; and, in a mediations case, even the outcome.
Opposed to the court system, where the legal system
Disputants' Views on the Disadvantages of and the judge control every aspect, ADR is much more
ADR flexible.

Although ADR was seen by the disputants Confidentiality:


participating in the in-depth interviews as a less costly
pathway than the court system, a small proportion Disputes resolved in court are public and any
ofthe 49 interviewees who felt they could comment on judgments awarded are also public. Mediation,
the merits of ADR, identified a series of potential
arbitration, and mini trials are all conducted in private
drawbacks with ADR. Those are set out in Table 4.8
and in strict confidentiality.
Disadvantages of ADR Identified by Experienced Neutral Panelists:
Interviewees (Disputant In-depth Interviews
n=49)*
Our panelists are professional mediators and
arbitrators with training and expertise in dispute
Key Disadvantages % of resolution and insurance. Disputing parties are able to
Responses
Identified Interviewees
select their panelist from a list of qualified individuals
Lackof enforcement 10 20.4 who are specialized in specific aspects of insurance. In
Increased costs 9 18.4 the court system, binding decisions are made by judges
Delaying tactic 9 18.4 who may lack expertise in insurance practices.
Other 7 14.3
Cooperative Approach:
Compromise of principles 7 14.3
ADR practitioner may not All ADR services take place in a more informal, less
have the technical skills 3 6.1 confrontational atmosphere. This is more conducive to
required
maintaining a positive business relationship between
Need other party to be willing the two parties. With mediation, specifically, the result
2 4.1
to come to the table is collaboration between the two parties.
No right of appeal 2 4.1

* Multiple response.

6
http://www.justice.govt.nz/publications/global-
publications/a/alternative-dispute-resolution-general-civil-
cases/4-advantages-and-disadvantages-of-adr
7
http://www.ibabc.org/idrsbc/benefits.html
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 10

1.4 COMPARISON BETWEEN Litigation 1.4.2 Alternative Dispute Resolution (ADR)
ADR is a series of methods for settling disputes other
AND ADR8
than court based adjudication. There are several ADR
At some point in life, and perhaps several times, you processes which can be voluntary or ordered by the
will be faced with a dispute that needs to be settled and courts. Some states require persons to enter into
you must decide just how to reach a solution. Court arbitration or mediation before their case can be heard
based adjudication and ADR are two of the methods in court. Hoping the case can be settled in this manner,
used in settling those disputes; and distributive and states do this for economic reasons as well as to assist
integrative are two types of bargaining utilized in the in clearing court dockets. In other cases such as
ADR processes. employment and some other contracts, arbitration is
required for settling disputes. In these contractual
1.4.1 Litigation (Court Based Adjudication)
cases arbitration decisions are final and cannot be
Litigation is a lawsuit to be decided in court before a
appealed in court in most instances.
judge or jury. However, litigation can be intimidating
and risky for the litigants. In addition, because court One of the objections to litigation is that it can be
proceedings are adversarial, a battle between lawyers, intimidating the powerful against the weak the rich
the truth is not always the end result. A prominent against the poor. The fact is that some forms of ADR
New York defense attorney and Criminal Court Judge like arbitration can prove to be just as intimidating.
said in all honesty, I have nothing to do with
justiceJustice is not even part of the equation. Methods of negotiation in ADR can be divided into
two basic types: distributive; and, integrative.
Through the courts and litigation you can obtain
money, put a stop to certain activities, and have Distributive:
statutes and documents interpreted; but the outcome
is that one person wins and one loses. Litigation is Distributive negotiating has a win or lose outcome
expensive, sometimes prohibitively, preventing some the pie only has so many pieces and the more one side
from taking their cases into the courts. Even if one can gets, the less the other side has. Most often this type of
afford litigation, then you must face the crowded court bargaining is utilized when there are fixed resources in
docket and be willing to wait as the lengthy process dispute such as money or property. Personal
begins a lengthy process which keeps disputes relationships are low on the scale of importance.
broiling and relationships torn apart.
Distributive processes are often criticized because they
An additional issue is the fact that the dispute must be put emphasis on the parties differences and lead to
able to be translated into legal issues so some destructive actions. To be successful in distributive
disputes that seem real may not be able to be framed negotiating parties must guard their information and
into a legal issue that can be decided in court. try to get as much information from the opponent as
possible. Hardball is often necessary in distributive
On the plus side, litigation ends in a decision that is techniques and relationships become second place or
binding and enforceable; and it is appealable. are neglected and ignored.
Adjudication is public and has more safeguards than
many other processes. Secondly, court decisions are Even when some cooperative bargaining techniques
based on precedent and are more predictable than may prove beneficial and are put in place, there may be
alternative resolutions which can be formulated by the portions of the negotiations that can only be settled by
neutral party. dividing the pie or using distributive techniques.

In the final analysis, each person deserves their day in Integrative:


court if that is the method they prefer. However,
Integrative bargaining is interest based and looks for a
regardless of the pros and cons of litigation, one major
win/win solution. These techniques encourage
consideration in making a decision as to the resolution
cooperative problem solving which addresses all
method is the importance of the relationship between
parties needs and interests. Negotiators here envision
the two parties in the dispute. In litigation most
a pie with more unlimited pieces and desire an
relationships are left unable to be repaired. If your
outcome that will maintain, rather than destroy,
relationship with the opposing party is important to
relationships.
you or it is one that must be maintained, it is time to
perhaps consider an ADR process. At times, even in disputes that involve money, it
becomes clear to neutral parties that they must mend
the relationship before the money issue can be
resolved this means including integrative bargaining.
8
http://general-law.knoji.com/litigation-vs-alternative- In order to be successful in integrative negotiations all
dispute-resolution-adr/ the interests on both sides must be identified and fears
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 11

must be addressed. The goal is to have both sides work terms of time lost through communicating with the
on a solution that will be beneficial to both and allow professionals and in respect of legal fees and costs.
their relationship to remain intact.
It is also the practical knowledge and understanding of
While there are many ADR processes, they all utilize industry and commerce which assures the parties to
either distributive or integrative strategies; or a ADR processes that the people responsible for settling
combination of both. These processes cover a wide their dispute or assisting them to reach a settlement
spectrum from binding arbitration normally narrow in understand their business and their concerns. It
scope to reconciliation being a lengthy process focused further assures them that the outcome will not be
on mending relationships between people, races, based purely on legal technicalities but will take into
religions and even countries. account commercial practicalities and technical details
which lawyers may not fully comprehend.
If the dispute you are involved in has a fixed quantity
to work with and the other party is not a friend or 1.5 LIMITATION OF ADR IN GENERAL
someone with whom you must maintain a relationship, Generally ADR are usually faster, and cheaper than
then you could chose from court ordered adjudication, litigation.. they are also private and informal when also
arbitration (binding or non-binding), mediation (non- compared to litigation and it gets both parties involved
binding); but consider the time and the expense of in the settlement process and the decisions are not
court. Consider too, that ADR can also be expensive necessarily final. However ADR does not alway
and if you chose to go to court when ADR fails, then guarantee an agreed upon decision and with
you can be faced with great expense. The process here arbitration the decision is final.10
will be the distributive type adversarial, demanding
concession, win at all cost. ----SEE DISADVANTAGES----

If, on the other hand, the dispute involves friends or 1.6 SUBJECT OF ADR
lasting relationships, you might wish to avoid court
Typical ADR Processes :
and work to maintain those relationships. Here the
process will be the integrative type parties are joint A process is any procedure agreed to by the parties and
problem solvers, focusing on interests, and working the third party neutral by which the parties will work
toward a wise decision that is good for all. You could to resolve their dispute. Figure 19-1 illustrates the
utilize mediation, a reconciliation process, restorative spectrum of ADR processes. For further discussion see
justice or restitution among others. SCAOs Taxonomy of Alternative Dispute Resolution
Processes. The most common ADR procedures are as
The deciding factors in your decision of whether to go
follows.
to court or utilize one of the many ADR methods will
be the type of dispute, the outcome you desire, the Convening (also called conflict assessment) involves
relationship you have with the opposing party, and the the use of a neutral third party to help assess the
cost involved in each. Should you decide on ADR, then causes of the conflict, to identify the persons or entities
you will need to decide whether this will be a that would be affected by the outcome of the conflict,
distributive or integrative negotiation. and to help these parties consider the best process (for
example, mediation, consensus-building, or a lawsuit)
1.4.3 Litigation and ADR Contrasted9 for them to deal with the conflict. The convener may
A crucial distinction between litigation and ADR is that also help get the parties ready for participation in a
whilst many legal practitioners engage in ADR dispute resolution process by providing educating the
processes, there is no legal or professional requirement parties on the nature of the selected process.
for either the ADR practitioner or for party
representatives at ADR processes to be legally qualified Facilitation or Consensus Building is a process used to
or to be members of legal professions such as the bar help a group of people or parties have constructive
or the law society. Many of those who engage in ADR discussions about complex or potentially controversial
practice are first and foremost experts in particular issues. The facilitator helps the parties set ground rules
fields such as architects, builders, civil engineers, for these discussions, promotes effective
mariners, scientists and social workers, albeit with a communication, elicits creative options, and keeps the
thorough understanding of ADR processes and some group focused and on track. Facilitation can be used
knowledge and understanding of law. In house legal
experts in large corporate organisations can take part
in the entire ADR process without engaging
10
professional lawyers thus cutting costs further, both in http://wiki.answers.com/Q/What_are_the_disadvantages
_and_advantages_of_Alternative_dispute_resolution#ixzz2
04zUKU00
9
http://www.nadr.co.uk/background/contrast.php
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 12

even where parties have not yet agreed to attempt to focus issues. In some cases, the neutral may withhold
resolve a conflict. the evaluation from the parties and proceed to mediate
the conflict, revealing the evaluation only if the
Mediation is a process in which a neutral third party mediation is unsuccessful.
(the mediator) assists disputants in reaching a
mutually satisfying settlement of their differences. Mini and Summary Jury Trials involve advisory trial
Mediation is voluntary, informal, and confidential. The proceedings. In the first case, the dispute is presented
mediator helps the disputants to communicate clearly, to a third-party neutral. A summary jury trial involves
to listen carefully, and to consider creative ways for impaneling an advisory jury to whom the parties make
reaching resolution. The mediator makes no an abbreviated presentation of their cases. The neutral
judgments about the people or the conflict (unless or the jury, as the case may be, then deliberates and
requested under the evaluative model), and issues no renders an advisory verdict. Where the credibility of
decision. Any agreement that is reached must satisfy key witness is central to a case, such a trial may
all the disputants. The Michigan Court Rules define provide valuable guidance to counsel about the likely
mediation as a process in which a neutral third party success of their case.
facilitates communication between parties, assists in
identifying issue, and helps explore solutions to Arbitration is an adjudicatory process in which a
promote a mutually acceptable settlement. MCR person or panel, other than a judge, controls pretrial
2.411(A)(2). A mediator has no authoritative decision- procedures, takes evidence, and renders an award
making power. Id. which is the equivalent of a verdict. To be enforceable
in a court the award must be entered as a judgment in
In Michigan, the terms mediation and facilitation are a court of competent jurisdiction. MCL 600.5025
often used interchangeably to describe what is known There are narrow grounds for appeal and the parties
generally elsewhere as mediation. may agree that no appeal will be permitted. Although
some treatises discuss non binding arbitration, any
Case Evaluation is an ADR process created by MCR nonbinding process is some form of mediation and
2.403 in which a three-person panel hears that the term arbitration is best used only for a
presentations by litigants and provides a written binding process. Arbitration offers several advantages
evaluation of the value of the case. If all of the parties over adjudication by a court. First, the parties can
accept, a final judgment is entered on all claims assert more control in defining the procedure. Second,
asserted in the case in the amount of the evaluation. If arbitrations are private although awards usually are
one or both parties reject, the rule provides for the entered as judgments by a court, making the terms of
imposition of sanctions in certain circumstances. The the outcome public. The process generally is quicker
evaluation is limited to a monetary amount, so it is not than court proceedings and is intended to be, and
well suited to resolving disputes seeking any form of usually is, less expensive than litigation.
injunctive or other equitable relief. Although case
evaluation panels are usually assigned by the office The American Arbitration Association (AAA) is a major
carrying out a circuit courts case evaluation program, arbitration service provider but there are many other
see generally MCR 2.404, in more complex disputes service providers. The parties are free to fashion their
the parties often stipulate to specific panel members own approach to arbitration but, unlike other ADR
who the disputants believe have expertise in the processes, the parties cannot withdraw from
subject matter involved in the dispute. This has the arbitration once it has been commenced. Because
effect of giving the parties more confidence in the case arbitration is binding, the parties should be very
evaluation award when made. This deviation from familiar with the Michigan Arbitration Act and the
usual procedure should be undertaken after obtaining Federal Arbitration Act (discussed in 19.19) before
an appropriate court order. agreeing to arbitration. In addition, because AAAs
arbitration rules are often incorporated into
Early Neutral Evaluation is an evaluative ADR process agreements whether or not the AAA is the arbitration
initiated early in a case, often at the direction of the services provider, parties should be familiar with these
court, in which the third party, who has experience or procedures before agreeing to be bound by them.
expertise in the subject matter of the suit, meets with
the parties and may receive presentations, after which Practitioners should review the arbitrators authority
the neutral provides the parties with an evaluation of to compel discovery and attendance of witnesses under
the likelihood of success and likely ranges of damages. any applicable statute and the procedures under which
The expectation is that an early evaluation from a the arbitration is conducted. For example, the
knowledgeable, objective expert will prompt the arbitrators authority is broader under the Federal
parties to take a more realistic approach to settling Arbitration Act and narrower under the AAAs
their dispute. There are many variations on this procedures. The parties agreement to arbitrate may
process, including use of the process to simplify or specify discovery obligations as a matter of contract.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 13

If arbitration may be subject to international rules, the parties may retain a particular arbitrator (often
particular care should be taken because these from a list of arbitrators) to decide a number of cases
procedures may be very different from the American or to serve the parties for a specified length of time
norm. (this is common when a panel is involved). Parties
often select a different arbitrator for each new dispute.
Med-Arb is an ADR process in which the parties agree A common understanding by the parties in all cases,
in advance to commence mediation but to continue to however, is that they will be bound by the opinion of
binding arbitration of any issues not resolved by the decision maker rather than simply be obligated to
mediation. A different neutral generally is used for the "consider" an opinion or recommendation. Under this
arbitration after the mediation is completed. This method, the third party's decision generally has the
process offers the advantage of achieving a final force of law but does not set a legal precedent. It is
resolution if mediation does not fully settle all matters. usually not reviewable by the courts.
It is not often used in environmental disputes.
Binding arbitration is a statutorily-mandated feature of
Modes of ADR Federal labor management agreements. Consistent
with statute, the parties to such agreements are free to
The most common approaches in Michigan for
negotiate the terms and conditions under which
environmental disputes are mediation (both evaluative
arbitrators are used to resolve disputes, including the
and facilitative models), third-party neutral fact
procedures for their selection. Some agreements may
finding, and facilitated rule or policy development.
provide for "permanent" arbitrators and some may
Most two-party environmental disputes utilize provide for arbitration panels.
mediation at some point, whether initiated by the
Conciliation involves building a positive relationship
parties or ordered by the court. Participants usually
between the parties to a dispute. A third party or
include attorneys, party representatives and experts.
conciliator (who may or may not be totally neutral to
Where the facilitative model is employed, the third-
the interests of the parties) may be used by the parties
party neutral is usually one individual. Where the
to help build such relationships.
parties seek evaluative input, it is not uncommon to
use a three-person panel. In some cases, the mediation A conciliator may assist parties by helping to establish
follows the facilitative model but if the parties do not communication, clarifying misperceptions, dealing
reach an agreement, the neutral is asked to provide an with strong emotions, and building the trust necessary
evaluation either as a general advisory number or in for cooperative problem-solving. Some of the
the form of an evaluation to be accepted or rejected by techniques used by conciliators include providing for a
the parties. In the latter case, the evaluator receives the neutral meeting place, carrying initial messages
acceptance or rejections from each party in confidence. between/among the parties, reality testing regarding
Only if both sides accept does the neutral disclose the perceptions or misperceptions, and affirming the
parties responses. This way, if only one party accepts, parties' abilities to work together. Since a general
it does not lose any bargaining position by having its objective of conciliation is often to promote openness
acceptance disclosed to the other side. by the parties (to take the risk to begin negotiations),
this method allows parties to begin dialogues, get to
Because many environmental disputes deal with not
know each other better, build positive perceptions, and
just a specific sum certain but often involve definition
enhance trust. The conciliation method is often used in
of the respective parties duties and liabilities after the
conjunction with other methods such as facilitation or
settlement, neutrals in environmental mediations may
mediation.
play a more active role than in more typical tort or
contract disputes where the principal dispute is usually Cooperative problem-solving is one of the most basic
money. For this same reason, environmental methods of dispute resolution. This informal process
mediation may result in numerous sessions conducted us ually does not use the services of a third party and
over a substantial time period. typically takes place when the concerned parties agree
to resolve a question or issue of mutual concern. It is a
ADR Techniques or Methods11 positive effort by the parties to collaborate rather than
compete to resolve a dispute.
Binding arbitration involves the presentation of a
dispute to an impartial or neutral individual Cooperative problem-solving may be the procedure of
(arbitrator) or panel (arbitration panel) for issuance of first resort when the parties recognize that a problem
a binding decision. Unless arranged otherwise, the or dispute exists and that they may be affected
parties usually have the ability to decide who the negatively if the matter is not resolved. It is most
individuals are that serve as arbitrators. In some cases, commonly used when a conflict is not highly polarized
and prior to the parties forming "hard line" positions.
11
http://www.opm.gov/er/adrguide/section1-a.asp
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 14

This method is a key element of labor-management arrive at the jointly agreed upon goal. The facilitator
cooperation programs. may be a member of one of the parties to the dispute or
may be an external consultant. Facilitators focus on
Dispute panels use one or more neutral or impartial procedural assistance and remain impartial to the
individuals who are available to the parties as a means topics or issues under discussion.
to clarify misperceptions, fill in information gaps, or
resolve differences over data or facts. The panel The method of facilitating is most appropriate when:
reviews conflicting data or facts and suggests ways for (1) the intensity of the parties' emotions about the
the parties to reconcile their differences. These issues in dispute are low to moderate; (2) the parties or
recommendations may be procedural in nature or they issues are not extremely polarized; (3) the parties have
may involve specific substantive recommendations, enough trust in each other that they can work together
depending on the authority of the panel and the needs to develop a mutually acceptable solution; or (4) the
or desires of the parties. Information analyses and parties are in a common predicament and they need or
suggestions made by the panel may be used by the will benefit from a jointly-acceptable outcome.
parties in other processes such as negotiations.
Factfinding is the use of an impartial expert (or group)
This method is generally an informal process and the selected by the parties, an agency, or by an individual
parties have considerable latitude about how the panel with the authority to appoint a factfinder in order to
is used. It is particularly useful in those organizations determine what the "facts" are in a dispute. The
where the panel is non-threatening and has established rationale behind the efficacy of factfinding is the
a reputation for helping parties work through and expectation that the opinion of a trusted and impartial
resolve their own disputes short of using some formal neutral will carry weight with the parties. Factfinding
dispute resolution process. was originally used in the attempt to resolve labor
disputes, but variations of the procedure have been
Early neutral evaluation uses a neutral or impartial applied to a wide variety of problems in other areas as
third party to provide a non-binding evaluation, well.
sometimes in writing, which gives the parties to a
dispute an objective perspective on the strengths and Factfinders generally are not permitted to resolve or
weaknesses of their cases. Under this method, the decide policy issues. The factfinder may be authorized
parties will usually make informal presentations to the only to investigate or evaluate the matter presented
neutral to highlight the parties' cases or positions. The and file a report establishing the facts in the matter. In
process is used in a number of courts across the some cases, he or she may be authorized to issue either
country, including U.S. District Courts. a situation assessment or a specific non-binding
procedural or substantive recommendation as to how a
Early neutral evaluation is appropriate when the dispute might be resolved. In cases where such
dispute involves technical or factual issues that lend recommendations are not accepted, the data (or facts)
themselves to expert evaluation. It is also used when will have been collected and organized in a fashion that
the parties disagree significantly about the value of will facilitate further negotiations or be available for
their cases and when the top decision makers of one or use in later adversarial procedures.
more of the parties could be better informed about the
real strengths and weaknesses of their cases. Finally, it Interest-based problem-solving is a technique that
is used when the parties are seeking an alternative to creates effective solutions while improving the
the expensive and time-consuming process of relationship between the parties. The process separates
following discovery procedures. the person from the problem, explores all interests to
define issues clearly, brainstorms possibilities and
Facilitation involves the use of techniques to improve opportunities, and uses some mutually agreed upon
the flow of information in a meeting between parties to standard to reach a solution. Trust in the process is a
a dispute. The techniques may also be applied to common theme in successful interest-based problem-
decision-making meetings where a specific outcome is solving.
desired (e.g., resolution of a conflict or dispute). The
term "facilitator" is often used interchangeably with Interest-based problem-solving is often used in
the term "mediator," but a facilitator does not typically collective bargaining between labor and management
become as involved in the substantive issues as does a in place of traditional, position-based bargaining.
mediator. The facilitator focuses more on the process However, as a technique, it can be effectively applied in
involved in resolving a matter. many contexts where two or more parties are seeking
to reach agreement.
The facilitator generally works with all of the meeting's
participants at once and provides procedural Mediated arbitration, commonly known as "med-arb,"
directions as to how the group can move efficiently is a variation of the arbitration procedure in which an
through the problem-solving steps of the meeting and impartial or neutral third party is authorized by the
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 15

disputing parties to mediate their dispute until such summaries of its cases before the major decision
time as they reach an c. As part of the process, when makers for the parties who have authority to settle the
impasse is reached, the third party is authorized by the dispute. The summaries contain explicit data about the
parties to issue a binding opinion on the cause of the legal basis and the merits of a case. The rationale
impasse or the remaining issue(s) in dispute. behind a minitrial is that if the decision makers are
fully informed as to the merits of their cases and that
In some cases, med-arb utilizes two outside parties-- of the opposing parties, they will be better prepared to
one to mediate the dispute and another to arbitrate successfully engage in settlement discussions. The
any remaining issues after the mediation process is process generally follows more relaxed rules for
completed. This is done to address some parties' discovery and case presentation than might be found
concerns that the process, if handled by one third in the court or other proceeding and usually the parties
party, mixes and confuses procedural assistance (a agree on specific limited periods of time for
characteristic of mediation) with binding decision presentations and arguments.
making (a characteristic of arbitration). The concern is
that parties might be less likely to disclose necessary A third party who is often a former judge or individual
information for a settlement or are more likely to versed in the relevant law is the individual who
present extreme arguments during the mediation stage oversees a minitrial. That individual is responsible for
if they know that the same third party will ultimately explaining and maintaining an orderly process of case
make a decision on the dispute. presentation and usually makes an advisory ruling
regarding a settlement range, rather than offering a
Mediated arbitration is useful in narrowing issues specific solution for the parties to consider. The parties
more quickly than under arbitration alone and helps can use such an advisory opinion to narrow the range
parties focus their resources on the truly difficult of their discussions and to focus in on acceptable
issues involved in a dispute in a more efficient and settlement options--settlement being the ultimate
effective manner. objective of a minitrial.

Mediation is the intervention into a dispute or The minitrial method is a particularly efficient and cost
negotiation of an acceptable, impartial and neutral effective means for settling contract disputes and can
third party who has no decision-making authority. The be used in other cases where some or all of the
objective of this intervention is to assist the parties in following characteristics are present: (1) it is important
voluntarily reaching an acceptable resolution of issues to get facts and positions before high-level decision
in dispute. Mediation is useful in highly-polarized makers; (2) the parties are looking for a substantial
disputes where the parties have either been unable to level of control over the resolution of the dispute; (3)
initiate a productive dialogue, or where the parties some or all of the issues are of a technical nature; and
have been talking and have reached a seemingly (4) a trial on the merits of the case would be very long
insurmountable impasse. and/or complex.

A mediator, like a facilitator, makes primarily Negotiated rulemaking, commonly known as "reg-
procedural suggestions regarding how parties can neg," brings together representatives of various
reach agreement. Occasionally, a mediator maysuggest interest groups and a Federal agency to negotiate the
some substantive options as a means of encouraging text of a proposed rule. The method is used before a
the parties to expand the range of possible resolutions proposed rule is published in the Federal Register
under consideration. A mediator often works with the under the Administrative Procedures Act (APA). The
parties individually, in caucuses, to explore acceptable first step is to set up a well-balanced group
resolution options or to develop proposals that might representing the regulated public, public interest
move the parties closer to resolution. groups, and state and local governments, and join
them with a representative of the Federal agency in a
Mediators differ in their degree of directiveness or
Federally chartered advisory committee to negotiate
control while assisting disputing parties. Some
the text of the rule. If the committee reaches consensus
mediators set the stage for bargaining, make minimal
on the rule, then the Federal agency can use this
procedural suggestions, and intervene in the
consensus as a basis for its proposed rule.
negotiations only to avoid or overcome a deadlock.
Other mediators are much more involved in forging While reg-neg may result in agreement on composition
the details of a resolution. Regardless of how directive of a particular rule an agency may wish to propose,
the mediator is, the mediator performs the role of when the rule is proposed it is still subject to public
catalyst that enables the parties to initiate progress review under the APA. This is the last step in the
toward their own resolution of issues in dispute. process. Federal agency experience is that the process
shortens considerably the amount of time and reduces
Minitrials involve a structured settlement process in
the resources needed to promulgate sensitive, complex,
which each side to a dispute presents abbreviated
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 16

and far-reaching regulations--often regulations power of the ombudsman lies in his or her ability to
mandated by statute. persuade the parties involved to accept his or her
recommendations. Generally, an individual not
Settlement conferences involve a pre-trial conference accepting the proposed solution of the ombudsman is
conducted by a settlement judge or referee and free to pursue a remedy in other forums for dispute
attended by representatives for the opposing parties resolution.
(and sometimes attended by the parties themselves) in
order to reach a mutually acceptable settlement of the Ombudsmen may be used to handle employee
matter in dispute. The method is used in the judicial workplace complaints and disputes or complaints and
system and is a common practice in some jurisdictions. disputes from outside of the place of employment, such
Courts that use this method may mandate settlement as those from customers or clients. Ombudsmen are
conferences in certain circumstances. often able to identify and track systemic problems and
suggest ways of dealing with those problems.
The role of a settlement judge is similar to that of a
mediator in that he or she assists the parties Partnering is used to improve a variety of working
procedurally in negotiating an agreement. Such judges relationships, primarily between the Federal
play much stronger authoritative roles than mediators, Government and contractors, by seeking to prevent
since they also provide the parties with specific disputes before they occur. The method relies on an
substantive and legal information about what the agreement in principle to share the risks involved in
disposition of the case might be if it were to go to completing a project and to establish and promote a
court. They also provide the parties with possible nurturing environment. This is done through the use of
settlement ranges that could be considered. team-building activities to help define common goals,
improve communication, and foster a problem-solving
Non-binding arbitration involves presenting a dispute attitude among the group of individuals who must
to an impartial or neutral individual (arbitrator) or work together throughout a contract's term.
panel (arbitration panel) for issuance of an advisory or
non-binding decision. This method is generally one of Partnering in the contract setting typically involves an
the most common quasi-judicial means for resolving initial partnering workshop after the contract award
disputes and has been used for a long period of time to and before the work begins. This is a facilitated
resolve labor/management and commercial disputes. workshop involving the key stakeholders in the project.
Under the process, the parties have input into the The purpose of the workshop is to develop a team
selection process, giving them the ability to select an approach to the project. This generally results in a
individual or panel with some expertise and knowledge partnership agreement that includes dispute
of the disputed issues, although this is not a prevention and resolution procedures.
prerequisite for an individual to function as an
arbitrator. Generally, the individuals chosen are those Peer review is a problem-solving process where an
known to be impartial, objective, fair, and to have the employee takes a dispute to a group or panel of fellow
ability to evaluate and make judgments about data or employees and managers for a decision. The decision
facts. The opinions issued by the third party in such may or may not be binding on the employee and/or the
cases are non-binding; however, parties do have the employer, depending on the conditions of the
flexibility to determine, by mutual agreement, that an particular process. If it is not binding on the employee,
opinion will be binding in a particular case. he or she would be able to seek relief in traditional
forums for dispute resolution if dissatisfied with the
Non-binding arbitration is appropriate for use when decision under peer review. The principle objective of
some or all of the following characteristics are present the method is to resolve disputes early before they
in a dispute: (1) the parties are looking for a quick become formal complaints or grievances.
resolution to the dispute; (2) the parties prefer a third
party decision maker, but want to ensure they have a Typically, the panel is made up of employees and
role in selecting the decision maker; and (3) the parties managers who volunteer for this duty and who are
would like more control over the decision making trained in listening, questioning, and problem-solving
process than might be possible under more formal skills as well as the specific policies and guidelines of
adjudication of the dispute. the panel. Peer review panels may be standing groups
of individuals who are available to address whatever
Ombudsmen are individuals who rely on a number of disputes employees might bring to the panel at any
techniques to resolve disputes. These techniques given time. Other panels may be formed on an ad hoc
include counseling, mediating, conciliating, and basis through some selection process initiated by the
factfinding. Usually, when an ombudsman receives a employee, e.g., blind selection of a certain number of
complaint, he or she interviews parties, reviews files, names from a pool of qualified employees and
and makesrecommendations to the disputants. managers.
Typically, ombudsmen do not impose solutions. The
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 17

2 INTERNATIONAL Private international law,


laws, which addresses the questions of (1) which
or conflict of

ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE jurisdiction may hear a case, and (2) the law
concerning which jurisdiction applies to the issues in
RESOLUTION/ PEACEFUL the case.12

SETTLEMENT OF Conflict of laws (or private international law) is a set of


procedural rules that determines which legal system
and which jurisdiction's applies to a given dispute. The
INTERNATIONAL DISPUTE rules typically apply when a legal dispute has a
"foreign" element such as a contract agreed to by
2.1 INTRODUCTION TO PUBLIC parties located in different countries, although the
"foreign" element also exists in multi-jurisdictional
INTERNATIONAL LAW AND
countries such as the United Kingdom, the United
PRIVATE INTERNATIONAL LAW States, Australia and Canada.

Public international law, which governs the The term conflict of laws itself originates from
relationship between provinces and international situations where the ultimate outcome of a legal
entities. It includes these legal fields: treaty law, law of dispute depended upon which law applied, and the
sea, international criminal law, the laws of war or common law courts manner of resolving the conflict
international humanitarian law and international between those laws. In civil law, lawyers and legal
human rights law. scholars refer to conflict of laws as private
international law. Private international law has no real
Public international law concerns the structure connection with public international law, and is
and conduct of sovereign states; analogous instead a feature of local law which varies from country
entities, such as the Holy See; and to country.
intergovernmental organizations. To a lesser
The three branches of conflict of laws are
degree, international law also may affect
multinational corporations and individuals, an Jurisdiction whether the forum court has the
impact increasingly evolving beyond domestic power to resolve the dispute at hand
legal interpretation and enforcement. Public Choice of law the law which is being applied
international law has increased in use and to resolve the dispute
importance vastly over the twentieth century, due Foreign judgments the ability to recognize
to the increase in global trade, environmental and enforce a judgment from an external
deterioration on a worldwide scale, awareness of forum within the jurisdiction of the
human rights violations, rapid and vast increases adjudicating forum
in international transportation and a boom in
global communications.
Conflicts between public international law
The field of study combines two main branches: and national sovereignty
the law of nations (jus gentium) and See also: Monism and dualism in international law
international agreements and conventions (jus
The conflict between international law and national
inter gentes), which have different foundations
sovereignty is subject to vigorous debate and dispute in
and should not be confused.
academia, diplomacy, and politics. Certainly, there is a
growing trend toward judging a state's domestic
Public international law should not be confused actions in the light of international law and standards.
with "private international law", which is Numerous people now view the nation-state as the
concerned with the resolution of conflict of laws. primary unit of international affairs, and believe that
In its most general sense, international law only states may choose to voluntarily enter into
"consists of rules and principles of general commitments under international law, and that they
application dealing with the conduct of states and have the right to follow their own counsel when it
of intergovernmental organizations and with their comes to interpretation of their commitments. Certain
relations inter se, as well as with some of their scholars and political leaders feel that these modern
relations with persons, whether natural or
juridical.
12
http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/International_law
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 18

developments endanger nation states by taking power rests on a political fact for which no purely legal
away from state governments and ceding it to explanation can be provided. In theoretical terms, the
international bodies such as the U.N. and the World idea of "sovereignty", historically, from Socrates to
Thomas Hobbes, has always necessitated a moral
Bank, argue that international law has evolved to a
imperative on the entity exercising it.
point where it exists separately from the mere consent
of states, and discern a legislative and judicial process
For centuries past, the idea that a state could be
to international law that parallels such processes sovereign was always connected to its ability to
within domestic law. This especially occurs when states guarantee the best interests of its own citizens. Thus, if
violate or deviate from the expected standards of a state could not act in the best interests of its own
conduct adhered to by all civilized nations. citizens, it could not be thought of as a sovereign
state.[2]
A number of states place emphasis on the principal of
territorial sovereignty, thus seeing states as having free The concept of sovereignty has been discussed
rein over their internal affairs. Other states oppose this throughout history, from the time of the Romans
view. One group of opponents of this point of view, through to the present day. It has changed in its
definition, concept, and application throughout,
including many European nations, maintain that all
especially during the Age of Enlightenment. The
civilized nations have certain norms of conduct current notion of state sovereignty is often traced back
expected of them, including the prohibition of to the Peace of Westphalia (1648), which, in relation to
genocide, slavery and the slave trade, wars of states, codified the basic principles:
aggression, torture, and piracy, and that violation of
these universal norms represents a crime, not only territorial integrity
against the individual victims, but against humanity as border inviolability
a whole. States and individuals who subscribe to this supremacy of the state (rather than the
view opine that, in the case of the individual Church)
responsible for violation of international law, he "is a sovereign is the supreme lawmaking
authority within its jurisdiction.13
become, like the pirate and the slave trader before him,
hostis humani generis, an enemy of all mankind",[4]
and thus subject to prosecution in a fair trial before 2.1.1.2 Universal jurisdiction14
any fundamentally just tribunal, through the exercise is a principle of international law that allows states to
of universal jurisdiction. investigate and prosecute a national of any state found
within their borders who is alleged to have committed
Though the European democracies tend to support certain international crimes.
broad, universalistic interpretations of international
law, many other democracies have differing views on This principle is premised upon the idea that crimes
international law. Several democracies, including under international law such as war crimes, crimes
India, Israel and the United States, take a flexible, against humanity, airplane hijacking and genocide as
eclectic approach, recognizing aspects of public well as torture, extrajudicial killings, and forced
international law such as territorial rights as universal, disappearances are so serious and reprehensible that
regarding other aspects as arising from treaty or any state may prosecute the offender regardless of
custom, and viewing certain aspects as not being nationality because they are in essence an enemy of
subjects of public international law at all. Democracies mankind.
in the developing world, due to their past colonial
In exercising universal jurisdiction, the investigating
histories, often insist on non-interference in their
and prosecuting state represents the interests of the
internal affairs, particularly regarding human rights
international community as a whole in enforcing
standards or their peculiar institutions, but often
international law and ending impunity for atrocities
strongly support international law at the bilateral and
and crimes that shock the consciousness of humanity.
multilateral levels, such as in the United Nations, and
especially regarding the use of force, disarmament Universal jurisdiction allows a state to prosecute an
obligations, and the terms of the UN Charter. individual in its courts where none of the traditional
bases for jurisdiction, i.e. territorial, nationality,
2.1.1 BASIC PRINCIPLES OF INTERNATIONAL passive personality, or protective, exists. Universal
LAW (SOVEREIGNTY, JURISDICTION, jurisdiction is usually a type of permissive jurisdiction,
INDEPENDENCE etc.) in that it requires a State to establish domestic laws
authorizing the right to exercise jurisdiction over
2.1.1.1 Sovereignty specified crimes.

is the quality of having supreme, independent


authority over a geographic area, such as a territory.[1]
13
http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Sovereignty
It can be found in a power to rule and make law that 14
http://www.judicialmonitor.org/archive_1007/generalprinciples.html
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 19

The main limitation on the exercise of universal crimes against humanity, extrajudicial executions, war
jurisdiction is head of state immunity, which has been crimes, torture and forced disappearances.[4]
extended to other certain high-ranking state ministers.
A sitting head of state or high-ranking minister is Opponents, such as Henry Kissinger, argue that
immune from prosecution by another state. This universal jurisdiction is a breach on each state's
principle was reaffirmed by the International Court of sovereignty: all states being equal in sovereignty, as
Justice in the Case Concerning The Arrest Warrant of affirmed by the United Nations Charter, "Widespread
11 April 2000 (Congo v. Belgium). Yerodia Ndombasi, agreement that human rights violations and crimes
Congos Foreign Minister, was found to be immune against humanity must be prosecuted has hindered
from prosecution by Belgium. The ICJ, however, in a active consideration of the proper role of international
concurring opinion, reaffirmed the underlying courts. Universal jurisdiction risks creating universal
principle of universal jurisdiction as being lawful. tyranny that of judges."[5][6] According to
Kissinger, as a practical matter, since any number of
Universal jurisdiction or universality principle is a states could set up such universal jurisdiction
principle in public international law (as opposed to tribunals, the process could quickly degenerate into
private international law) whereby states claim politically-driven show trials to attempt to place a
criminal jurisdiction over persons whose alleged quasi-judicial stamp on a state's enemies or opponents.
crimes were committed outside the boundaries of the
prosecuting state, regardless of nationality, country of The United Nations Security Council Resolution 1674,
residence, or any other relation with the prosecuting adopted by the United Nations Security Council on
country. The state backs its claim on the grounds that April 28, 2006, "Reaffirm[ed] the provisions of
the crime committed is considered a crime against all, paragraphs 138 and 139 of the 2005 World Summit
which any state is authorized to punish, as it is too Outcome Document regarding the responsibility to
serious to tolerate jurisdictional arbitrage. protect populations from genocide, war crimes, ethnic
cleansing and crimes against humanity" and commits
The concept of universal jurisdiction is therefore the Security Council to action to protect civilians in
closely linked to the idea that some international armed conflict.15
norms are erga omnes, or owed to the entire world
community, as well as the concept of jus cogens that 2.1.1.3 Independence of the Judiciary16
certain international law obligations are binding on all In Brief
states and cannot be modified by treaty. [1]
International law requires that cases presented in
According to critics, the principle justifies a unilateral international tribunals and cases presented in
act of wanton disregard of the sovereignty of a nation domestic tribunals where international law is
or the freedom of an individual concomitant to the applicable be resolved by tribunals that are
pursuit of a vendetta or other ulterior motives, with the independent and that are composed of independent
obvious assumption that the person or state thus judges.
disenfranchised is not in a position to bring retaliation
to the state applying this principle. In Theory

The concept received a great deal of prominence with Asserting that the above is a principle of international
Belgium's 1993 "law of universal jurisdiction", which law may seem strange, because it is not usually
was amended in 2003 in order to reduce its scope included in the litany of principles of international law
following a case before the International Court of that a student would encounter in studying
Justice regarding an arrest warrant issued under the international law, or that a professor of international
law, entitled Case Concerning the Arrest Warrant of 11 law would enunciate in his or her lectures on
April 2000 (Democratic Republic of the Congo v. international law. For example and by analogy, law
Belgium).[2] The creation of the International students in the United States studying constitutional
Criminal Court (ICC) in 2002 reduced the perceived law or criminal law would not be confronted by a
need to create universal jurisdiction laws, although the professor with cases which discuss, or texts that
ICC is not entitled to judge crimes committed before espouse, the concept of an independent judiciary in
2002. either the federal court system or the court systems of
the individual states. Perhaps the reason is because the
According to Amnesty International, a proponent of necessity of an independent judiciary in a country
universal jurisdiction, certain crimes pose so serious a espousing democracy and the rule of law is self-
threat to the international community as a whole, that evident. Nevertheless it is important to highlight this
states have a logical and moral duty to prosecute an principle and resolve any questions that might be
individual responsible for it; no place should be a safe

haven for those who have committed genocide,[3] 15
http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Universal_jurisdiction
16
http://www.judicialmonitor.org/archive_0506/generalprinciples.html
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 20

raised as to the validity of it as a principle in In addition, article 30 requires that the judges who sit
international law. on that court exercise their powers impartially and
conscientiously.
One might, in an attempt to resolve any doubt or
question about this principle, respond by simply In resolving any doubt, the ICJ might review Article 38
stating, as indicated above, that international law, of the Statute, which enunciates sources of law to be
because it is law, presumes or has as its basis the rule applied by the Court:
of law. And the rule of law necessarily incorporates
the idea of dispute resolution by peaceful means, and The Court, whose function is to decide in accordance
the further idea of the conduct or hearing of cases with international law such disputes as are submitted
according to recognized procedures, including to it, shall apply:
recognized tribunals. And given the necessity of
a. international conventions, whether general or
tribunals to resolve disputes and hear cases, to have
particular, establishing rules expressly recognized by
any validity those tribunals must necessarily be
the contesting states;
independent and made up of independent judges. Thus
one argument would be simply that the whole idea of b. international custom, as evidence of a general
international law requires independent tribunals and practice accepted as law;
independent judges.
c. the general principles of law recognized by civilized
There is, however, another approach that may be taken nations;
in asserting that independent tribunals and
independent judges in the dispute resolution and case- d. subject to the provisions of Article 59, judicial
hearing aspects of international law together form a decisions and the teachings of the most highly
principle of international law. One definition of law is qualified publicists of the various nations, as
that it is simply those principles or rules that a court subsidiary means for the determination of rules of law.
would enforce or give effect to in resolving a case. Thus
in cases involving the public or the government, courts The Court would then inquire whether any of these
would look to a constitution, a statute, or a regulation sources of law require an independent judiciary to
adopted by a regulatory body. In private disputes, resolve international cases or domestic cases with an
courts would look to the private law of the parties, ingredient of international law. With respect to
such as a contract or agreement. Using this definition international conventions Article 10 of the Universal
of law, is the guarantee of an independent judiciary a Declaration of Human Rights states:
principle of international law that would be recognized
Everyone is entitled in full equality to a fair and public
and applied by an international tribunal? For example,
hearing by an independent and impartial tribunal, in
if a question arose in the International Court of
the determination of his rights and obligations and of
Justice, the grandfather of international courts,
any criminal charge against him.
whether the guarantee of an independent judiciary is a
recognized principle of international law, how would In addition part of Article 5 of the European
the ICJ resolve that issue? Convention on Human Rights states:
Actual Support for Principle In the determination of his civil rights and obligations
or of any criminal charge against him, everyone is
The International Court of Justice might look no
entitled to a fair and public hearing within a
further than the statute that created it, the Statute of
reasonable time by an independent and impartial
the International Court of Justice, adopted by
tribunal established by law.
countries in conjunction with the creation of the
United Nations in 1945 (the ICJ is the immediate One other convention, the International Covenant on
successor to the Permanent Court of International Civil and Political Rights, guarantees in the
Justice, created at the time of the establishment of the determination of any criminal charge or of rights and
League of Nations following World War I). Article 2 of obligations at a suit at law, a fair and public hearing by
that Statute provides: a competent, independent and impartial tribunal
established by law.
The Court shall be composed of a body of independent
judges, elected regardless of their nationality from There are undoubtedly other international conventions
among persons of high moral character, who possess that have similar provisions. Thus the Court could
the qualifications required in their respective countries apply these provisions of international conventions in
for appointment to the highest judicial offices, or are ruling that an independent judiciary is a principle of
jurisconsults of recognized competence in international law.
international law.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 21

Moreover, most countries have some kind of provision World Court or ICJ) is the primary judicial organ of
in their constitution or in a national statute that the United Nations. It is based in the Peace Palace in
provides for an independent judiciary. Former The Hague, Netherlands. Its main functions are to
Associate Justice of the U.S. Supreme Court, Sandra settle legal disputes submitted to it by states and to
Day OConnor, in a speech in 2003 before the Arab provide advisory opinions on legal questions submitted
Judicial Forum, pointed out that the constitutions of to it by duly authorized international organs, agencies,
almost all Arab countries contain provisions for an and the UN General Assembly.
independent judiciary. She specifically mentioned in
the speech the constitutions of Bahrain, Egypt, and Jurisdiction
Jordan. Other countries where an independent
As stated in Article 93 of the UN Charter, all 193 UN
judiciary is part of the fabric of the legal system are the
members are automatically parties to the Court's
United States, Canada, and Australia. Thus the concept
statute.[11] Non-UN members may also become parties
of an independent judiciary is a general principle of
to the Court's statute under the Article 93(2)
law recognized by civilized nations.
procedure. For example, before becoming a UN
Other Source Documents member state, Switzerland used this procedure in 1948
to become a party. And Nauru became a party in 1988.
Finally, the concept of an independent judiciary is Once a state is a party to the Court's statute, it is
included in the teachings of the most highly qualified entitled to participate in cases before the Court.
publicists of the various nations. The International However, being a party to the statute does not
Commission of Jurists, one of the most prestigious automatically give the Court jurisdiction over disputes
bodies of international jurists and lawyers, in 2004, involving those parties. The issue of jurisdiction is
issued what is known as the Berlin Declaration on considered in the two types of ICJ cases: contentious
Upholding Human Rights and the Rule of Law in issues and advisory opinions.
Combating Terrorism, which confirmed the idea of an
independent judiciary in the development and 2.2 RELEVANT ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE
implementation of counter-terrorism measures. Also SETTLEMENT INSTITUTIONS
a group of chief justices from various countries,
meeting in The Hague in 2001-2002, issued what is 2.2.1.1 PERMANENT COURT OF ARBITRATION
known as the Bangalore Draft Code of Judicial
(HAGUE CONVENTION OF 1907)
Conduct 2001, Adopted by the Judicial Group on
Strengthening Judicial Integrity, as revised at the
The Permanent Court of Arbitration (PCA), is an
Round Table Meeting of Chief Justices Held at the
international organization based in The Hague in the
Peace Palace, The Hague, November 25-26, 2002. Netherlands.
Value I of that declaration is independence of the
judiciary, and the following items 1.1-1.4 specifically HISTORY- The court was established in 1899 as one of
spell out what is meant by or contained in that value. the acts of the first Hague Peace Conference, which
makes it the oldest institution for international dispute
Thus three out of the four sources of international law resolution.
that are authorized for use by the International Court
of Justice in its organic statute confirm that an The creation of the PCA is set out under Articles 20 to
independent judiciary is a principle of international 29 of the 1899 Hague Convention for the pacific
law. settlement of international disputes, which was a result
of the first Hague Peace Conference. At the second
2.1.2 ARTICLE 33 PARAGRAPH 1 OF THE UN Hague Peace Conference, the earlier Convention was
revised by the 1907 Convention for the Pacific
CHARTER Settlement of International Disputes.
The parties to any dispute, the continuance of
which is likely to endanger the maintenance Unlike the ICJ, the PCA is not just open to states but
of international peace and security, shall, first also to other parties. The PCA provides services for the
of all, seek a solution by negotiation, resolution of disputes involving various combinations
enquiry, mediation, conciliation, of states, state entities, intergovernmental
organizations, and private parties.
arbitration, judicial settlement, resort
to regional agencies or arrangements,
PCA courtroom.
or other peaceful means of their own
choice.
The PCA is not a court in the conventional
understanding of that term, but an administrative
2.1.3 INTERNATIONAL COURT OF JUSTICE
organization with the object of having permanent and
The International Court of Justice (French: Cour readily available means to serve as the registry for
internationale de Justice; commonly referred to as the purposes of international arbitration and other related
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 22

procedures, including commissions of enquiry and A major effort in both the conferences was to create a
conciliation.[2] It is a permanent framework available binding international court for compulsory arbitration
to assist temporary arbitral tribunals or commissions. to settle international disputes, which was considered
The judges or abitrators that hear cases are officially necessary to replace the institution of war. This effort,
called "Members" of the Court. however, failed to realize success either in 1899 or in
1907. The First Conference was generally a success and
The PCA is housed in the Peace Palace in The Hague, was focused on disarmament efforts. The Second
which was built specially for the Court in 1913 with an Conference failed to create a binding international
endowment from Andrew Carnegie. From 1922 on, the court for compulsory arbitration but did enlarge the
building also housed the distinctly separate Permanent machinery for voluntary arbitration, and established
Court of International Justice, which was replaced by conventions regulating the collection of debts, rules of
the International Court of Justice in 1946. war, and the rights and obligations of neutrals. Along
with disarmament and obligatory arbitration, both
conferences included negotiations concerning the laws
In the early 1980s, the PCA helped in setting up the
of war and war crimes. Many of the rules laid down at
administrative services of the Iran-United States
the Hague Conventions were violated in the First
Claims Tribunal.
World War. The German invasion of Belgium, for
instance, was a violation of Hague III (1907), which
The public at large is usually more familiar with the states that hostilities must not commence without
International Court of Justice than with the Permanent explicit warning
Court of Arbitration, partly because of the closed
nature of cases handled by the PCA and to the low
Most of the great powers, including the United States,
number of cases dealt with between 1946 and 1990.
Britain, Russia, France, China, and Persia, favored a
The PCA's caseload has, however, increased since then.
binding international arbitration, but the condition
The PCA administers cases arising out of international
was that the vote should be unanimous, and a few
countries, led by Germany, vetoed the idea.
treaties (including bilateral and multilateral
investment treaties), and other agreements to
The second conference, in 1907, was generally a
arbitrate. The cases conducted by the PCA span a wide
failure, with few major decisions. However, the
range of legal issues, including disputes over territorial
meeting of major powers did prefigure later 20th-
and maritime boundaries, sovereignty, human rights,
century attempts at international cooperation.
international investment (investor-state arbitrations),
and matters concerning international and regional
trade. The second conference was called at the suggestion of
President Theodore Roosevelt in 1904, but postponed
because of the war between Russia and Japan. The
Hearings are rarely open to the public and sometimes
Second Peace Conference was held from June 15 to
even the decision itself is kept confidential at the
October 18, 1907, to expand upon the original Hague
request of the parties. Many decisions and related
Convention, modifying some parts and adding others,
documents are available on the PCA website.
with an increased focus on naval warfare. The British
tried to secure limitation of armaments, but were
2.2.1.2 Hague Convention of 1907 defeated by the other powers, led by Germany, which
feared a British attempt to stop the growth of the
The Hague Conventions were two international German fleet. Germany also rejected proposals for
treaties negotiated at international peace conferences compulsory arbitration. However, the conference did
at The Hague in the Netherlands: The First Hague enlarge the machinery for voluntary arbitration, and
Conference in 1899 and the Second Hague Conference established conventions regulating the collection of
in 1907. Along with the Geneva Conventions, the debts, rules of war, and the rights and obligations of
Hague Conventions were among the first formal neutrals.
statements of the laws of war and war crimes in the
body of secular international law. A third conference The Final Agreement was signed on October 18, 1907,
was planned for 1914 and later rescheduled for 1915, and entered into force on January 26, 1910. It
but never took place due to the start of World War I. consisted of thirteen sections, of which twelve were
The German international law scholar and neo- ratified and entered into force:
Kantian pacifist Walther Schcking called the
assemblies the "international union of Hague I: The Pacific Settlement of International
conferences".[1] and saw them as a nucleus of an Disputes
international federation that was to meet at regular II: The Limitation of Employment of Force for
intervals to administer justice and develop Recovery of Contract Debts
international law procedures for the peaceful
III: The Opening of Hostilities
settlement of disputes, asserting "that a definite
IV: The Laws and Customs of War on Land
political union of the states of the world has been
o includes the Annex on The
created with the First and Second Conferences." The
Qualifications of Belligerents, Chapter
various agencies created by the Conferences, like the
II: Prisoners of War
Permanent Court of Arbitration, "are agents or organs
of the union." V: The Rights and Duties of Neutral Powers
and Persons in Case of War on Land
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 23

VI: The Status of Enemy Merchant Ships at the have been more than 500 cases a year handled by the
Outbreak of Hostilities International Court of Arbitration since 1999.
VII: The Conversion of Merchant Ships into
War-Ships The International Chamber of Commerce (ICC)
VIII: The Laying of Automatic Submarine is the largest, most representative business
Contact Mines organization in the world.[citation needed] Its
IX: Bombardment by Naval Forces in Time of hundreds of thousands of member companies in over
War
130 countries have interests spanning every sector of
X: Adaptation to Maritime War of the
private enterprise.
Principles of the Geneva Convention
XI: Certain Restrictions with Regard to the
A world network of national committees keeps the ICC
Exercise of the Right of Capture in Naval War
International Secretariat in Paris informed about
XII: The Creation of an International Prize
Court [Not Ratified][5] national and regional business priorities. More than
XIII: The Rights and Duties of Neutral Powers 2,000 experts drawn from ICCs member companies
in Naval War feed their knowledge and experience into crafting the
ICC stance on specific business issues.
Two declarations were signed as well:
The UN, the World Trade Organization, and many
Declaration I: extending Declaration II from other intergovernmental bodies, both international
the 1899 Conference to other types of and regional, are kept in touch with the views of
aircraft[6] international business through ICC.
Declaration II: on the obligatory arbitration
History
The Brazilian delegation was led by the statesman Ruy
Barbosa, whose contribution was essential for the 2.2.3 The International Chamber of
defense of the principle of legal equality of nations.[7] Commerce was founded in 1919 to serve
The British delegation included the 11th Lord Reay world business by promoting trade and
(Donald James Mackay), Sir Ernest Satow and Eyre investment, open markets for goods and
Crowe. The Russian delegation was led by Fyodor services, and the free flow of capital.
Martens.The Uruguayan delegation was led by Jos
The organization's international
Batlle y Ordez, great defender of the compulsory
arbitration by creating the idea of an International secretariat was established in Paris and
Court of Arbitration, and an alliance of nations to force the ICC's International Court of
the arbitration. Arbitration was created in 1923.

Korea made a futile effort to take part in the ICC's first Chairman was 20th c. French Minister of
conference, in an incident known as the Hague Secret Finance Etienne Clmentel. ICC's current Chairman is
Emissary Affair. King Gojong dispatched Yi Jun, Yi Gerard Worms[1]. Harold McGraw III[2] is Vice-
Sang-Seol and Yi Wi-Jong as envoys to the second Chairman and Victor K. Fung[3] is Honorary Chairman.
peace conference, to argue that Eulsa Treaty was In January 2011, Jean-Guy Carrier [4] was elected
unjust and ask for help from the international society Secretary General of ICC by the ICC World Council.
to recover Koreas diplomatic sovereignty. An
American missionary, Homer Hulbert, also travelled to Membership
The Hague to argue against the treaty. All four men
were denied entry17
There are two ways to become a member of ICC[5]:
2.2.2 INTERNATIONAL COURT OF
1. Through affiliation with an ICC national committee
ARBITRATION (INTERNATIONAL or group.
CHAMBER OF COMMERCE)
2. By direct membership with the ICC International
Secretariat when a national committee/group has not
The International Court of Arbitration is an yet been established in your country/territory.
institution for the resolution of international
commercial disputes. The International Court of Governing bodies
Arbitration is part of the International Chamber of
Commerce. World Council

There are an increasing number of cases being brought ICC' s supreme governing body is the World Council,
before the International Court of Arbitration. There consisting of representatives of national committees.
The World Council elects ICCs highest officers,
including the Chairman and the Vice-Chairman, each
of whom serves a two-year term. The Chairman, Vice-
17
http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/Hague_Conventions_of_1899_and_1907 Chairman and the Honorary Chairman (the immediate
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 24

past Chairman) provide the organization with high- Dispute boards are independent bodies
level world leadership.They play an important role in designed to help resolve disagreements arising
ICC section. during the course of a contract.
Expertise is a way of finding the right person
Executive Board to make an independent assessment on any
subject relevant to business operations.
Strategic direction for ICC is provided by its Executive DOCDEX provides expert decisions to resolve
Board, consisting of up to 30 business leaders and ex- disputes related to documentary credits,
officio members. It is elected by the World Council on collections and demand guarantees,
the recommendation of the Chairmanship. Meeting incorporating ICC banking rules.
three times a year, the Executive Board oversees the
establishment of ICCs strategic priorities and the Policy and business practices
implementation of its policies.
ICC policies, rules and standards are prepared by
International Secretariat specialized working bodies. Normal procedure requires
policy statements first to be adopted by a commission,
The ICC International Secretariat, based in Paris, is the in consultation with national committees, and then
operational arm of ICC. It develops and carries out approved by the Executive Board, before they can be
ICCs work programme, feeding business views into regarded as official and public ICC positions.
intergovernmental organizations on issues that directly
affect business operations. The International Commissions examine major policy issues of interest
Secretariat is led by the Secretary General, who is to world business. Each national committee (NC) or
appointed by the World Council. group may appoint delegates to represent it at
meetings. Officers are appointed by the Chairman and
National Committees Secretary General in consultation with NCs. Meetings
of commissions are normally held twice a year.

In 90 of the worlds nations, members have established


Task forces are constituted under the various
formal ICC structures called national committees. In
commissions for a limited period to undertake specific
countries where there is no national committee,
projects and report back to their parent commission.
companies and organizations such as chambers of
Some task forces may include representatives of more
commerce and professional associations can become
than one commission.
direct members.

Finance Committee
2.2.4 INTERNATIONAL CENTER FOR
SETTLEMENT OF INVESTMENT DISPUTES
The Finance Committee advises the Executive Board (ICSID) (CONVENTION ON THE
on all financial matters. On behalf of the Executive SETTLEMENT OF INESTMENT DISPUTE
Board, it prepares the budget and regularly reports to BETWEEN STATES AND NATIONALS OF
the board. It reviews the financial implications of ICC
activities and supervises the flow of revenues and OTHER STATES)
expenses of the organization.

Dispute Resolution Services The International Centre for Settlement of Investment


Disputes (ICSID), an institution of the World Bank
ICC International Court of Arbitration has received Group based in Washington, D.C., United States, was
15,000 cases since its inception in 1923.[28] Over the established in 1966 pursuant to the Convention on the
past decade, the Court's workload has considerably Settlement of Investment Disputes between States and
expanded. Nationals of Other States (the ICSID Convention or
Washington Convention). As of May 2011, 157
The Court's membership has also grown and now countries had signed the ICSID Convention.
covers 86 countries. With representatives in North
America, Latin and Central America, Africa and the ICSID has an Administrative Council, chaired by the
Middle East and Asia, the ICC Court has significantly World Bank's President, and a Secretariat. It provides
increased its training activities on all continents and in
facilities for the conciliation and arbitration of
all major languages used in international trade.
investment disputes between member countries and
individual investors.
ICC Dispute Resolution Services exist in many forms:
During the first decade of the 21st century, with the
Amicable dispute resolution offers a proliferation of bilateral investment treaties (BITs),
framework for the settlement of disputes with
most of which refer present and future investment
the assistance of a neutral. Parties choose the
settlement technique, such as negotiation or a disputes to the ICSID, the caseload of the ICSID
mini-trial. substantially increased. As of 30 March 2007, ICSID
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 25

had registered 263 cases, more than 30 of which were Other non-members are Andorra, Angola, Antigua and
pending against Argentina, most resulting from Barbuda, Bhutan, Brazil, Cook Islands, Cuba, Djibouti,
Argentine government actions precipitated by Dominica, Equatorial Guinea, Eritrea, India, Iran,
Argentina's economic crisis. ICSID caseload may be Iraq, Kiribati, Laos, Liechtenstein, Libya, Maldives,
reduced by announcements from Nicaragua and Marshall Islands, Mexico, Monaco, Montenegro,
Venezuela that they intend to withdraw from the Myanmar, Nauru, Niue, North Korea, Palau, Poland,
ICSID.[1][2] San Marino, South Africa, Suriname, Tajikistan,
Tuvalu, Vanuatu, Vatican City, Vietnam, and the rest of
Establishment states with limited recognition.

On a number of occasions in the past, the World Bank Activities


as an institution and the President of the Bank in his
personal capacity have assisted in mediation or Pursuant to the Convention, ICSID provides facilities
conciliation of investment disputes between for the conciliation and arbitration of disputes between
governments and private foreign investors. The member countries and investors who qualify as
creation of the International Centre for Settlement of nationals of other member countries. Recourse to
Investment Disputes (ICSID) in 1966 was in part ICSID conciliation and arbitration is entirely
intended to relieve the President and the staff of the voluntary. However, once the parties have consented
burden of becoming involved in such disputes. But the to arbitration under the ICSID Convention, neither can
Bank's overriding consideration in creating ICSID was unilaterally withdraw its consent.[5] Moreover, all
the belief that an institution specially designed to ICSID Contracting States, whether or not parties to the
facilitate the settlement of investment disputes dispute, are required by the Convention to recognize
between governments and foreign investors could help and enforce ICSID arbitral awards.
to promote increased flows of international
investment. Besides this original role, the Centre has since 1978
had a set of Additional Facility Rules authorizing the
ICSID was established under the Convention on the ICSID Secretariat to administer certain types of
Settlement of Investment Disputes between States and proceedings between States and foreign nationals
Nationals of Other States which came into force on which fall outside the scope of the Convention. These
October 14, 1966. ICSID has an Administrative Council include conciliation and arbitration proceedings where
and a Secretariat. The Administrative Council is either the State party or the home State of the foreign
chaired by the World Bank's President and consists of national is not a member of ICSID. Additional Facility
one representative of each State which has ratified the conciliation and arbitration are also available for cases
Convention. Annual meetings of the Council are held where the dispute is not an investment dispute
in conjunction with the joint Bank/Fund annual provided it relates to a transaction which has "features
meetings. that distinguishes it from an ordinary commercial
transaction." The Additional Facility Rules further
ICSID is an autonomous international organization. allow ICSID to administer a type of proceedings not
However, it has close links with the World Bank. All of provided for in the Convention, namely fact-finding
ICSID's members are also members of the Bank. proceedings to which any State and foreign national
Unless a government makes a contrary designation, its may have recourse if they wish to institute an inquiry
Governor for the Bank sits ex officio on ICSID's "to examine and report on facts."
Administrative Council. The expenses of the ICSID
Secretariat are financed out of the Bank's budget,
although the costs of individual proceedings are borne
by the parties involved.[3] A third activity of ICSID in the field of the settlement
of disputes has consisted in the Secretary-General of
Membership ICSID accepting to act as the appointing authority of
arbitrators for ad hoc (i.e., non-institutional)
Members of the ICSID are 156 of the UN members and arbitration proceedings. This is most commonly done
Kosovo. in the context of arrangements for arbitration under
the Arbitration Rules of the United Nations
Signed, but not ratified, have Belize, Canada,
Commission on International Trade Law (UNCITRAL),
Dominican Republic, Ethiopia, Guinea-Bissau,
which are specially designed for ad hoc proceedings.
Kyrgyzstan, Namibia, Russia, Sao Tome and Principe,
Thailand

Former members are Bolivia, Ecuador, and soon to be Provisions on ICSID arbitration are commonly found
Venezuela.[4] in investment contracts between governments of
member countries and investors from other member
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 26

countries. Advance consents by governments to submit The United Nations Commission on
investment disputes to ICSID arbitration can also be International Trade Law (UNCITRAL) was
found in about twenty investment laws and in over 900 established by the United Nations General Assembly
by its Resolution 2205 (XXI) of 17 December 1966 "to
bilateral investment treaties. Arbitration under the
promote the progressive harmonization and
auspices of ICSID is similarly one of the main unification of international trade law".
mechanisms for the settlement of investment disputes
under four recent multilateral trade and investment UNCITRAL carries out its work at annual sessions held
treaties (the North American Free Trade Agreement, alternately in New York City and Vienna.
the Energy Charter Treaty, the Cartagena Free Trade
Agreement and the Colonia Investment Protocol of History
Mercosur).
When world trade began to expand dramatically in the
In addition to these activities, ICSID also carries on 1960s, national governments began to realize the need
advisory and research activities, publishing Investment for a global set of standards and rules to harmonize
Laws of the World and of Investment Treaties, and national and regional regulations, which until then
collaborates with other World Bank Group units. Since governed international trade.
April 1986, the Centre has published a semi-annual
law journal entitled ICSID Review: Foreign Investment Membership
Law Journal.
UNCITRAL's original membership comprised 29
ICSID proceedings do not necessarily take place in states, and was expanded to 36 in 1973, and again to
Washington, D.C. Other possible locations include the 60 in 2002. Member states of UNCITRAL are
Permanent Court of Arbitration at The Hague, the representing different legal traditions and levels of
economic development, as well as different geographic
Regional Arbitration Centres of the Asian-African
regions. States includes 14 African states, 14 Asian
Legal Consultative Committee at Cairo and Kuala states, 8 Eastern European states, 10 Latin American
Lumpur, the Australian Centre for International and Caribbean states, and 14 Western European states.
Commercial Arbitration at Melbourne, the Australian The Commission member States are elected by the
Commercial Disputes Centre at Sydney, the Singapore General Assembly. Membership is structured so as to
International Arbitration Centre, the GCC Commercial be representative of the world's various geographic
Arbitration Centre at Bahrain and the Frankfurt regions and its principal economic and legal systems.
Members of the commission are elected for terms of
International Arbitration Center of German Institution
six years, the terms of half the members expiring every
of Arbitration (DIS) and the Frankfurt Chamber of three years. As of 21 June 2010, the members of
Commerce and Industry.18 UNCITRAL, and the years when their memberships
expire, are:
2.2.5 UNITED NATIONS COMMISSION FOR
INTERNATIONAL TRADE LAW The methods of work are organized at three levels. The
(UNICITRAL MODEL LAW ON first level is UNCITRAL itself (The Commission),
which holds an annual plenary session. The second
INTRNATIONAL COMMERCIAL level is the intergovernmental working groups (which
ARBITRATION-1985) is developing the topics on UNCITRAL's work
International commercial law is the body of law that program. Texts designed to simplify trade transactions
governs international sale transactions. A transaction and reduce associated costs are developed by working
will qualify to be international if elements of more than groups comprising all member States of UNCITRAL,
which meet once or twice per year. Non-member States
one country are involved. and interested international and regional
organizations are also invited and can actively
Since World War II international trade has grown contribute to the work since decisions are taken by
extensively, seeing the increasing importance of consensus, not by vote. Draft texts completed by these
international commercial law. It plays a vital role in working groups are submitted to UNCITRAL for
world development, particularly through the finalization and adoption at its annual session. The
International Trade Law Division of the United
integration of world markets.
Nations Office of Legal Affairs provides substantive
secretariat services to UNCITRAL, such as conducting
Lex mercatoria refers to that part of international research and preparing studies and drafts. This is the
commercial law which is unwritten, including third level, which assists the other two in the
customary commercial law; customary rules of preparation and conduct of their work.
evidence and procedure; and general principles of
commercial law Uncitral is:

Coordinating the work of organizations active


and encouraging cooperation among them.
18
http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/International_Centre_for_Settlement_of_I
nvestment_Disputes
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 27

Promoting wider participation in existing Model laws
international conventions and wider
acceptance of existing model and uniform A model law is a legislative text that is recommended
laws. to States for enactment as part of their national law.
Preparing or promoting the adoption of new Model laws are generally finalized and adapted by
international conventions, model laws and UNCITRAL, at its annual session, while conventions
uniform laws and promoting the codification requires the convening of a diplomatic conference.
and wider acceptance of international trade
terms, provisions, customs and practice, in
UNCITRAL Model Law on International
collaboration, where appropriate, with the
Commercial Arbitration (1985) (text)
organizations operating in this field.
Model Law on International Credit Transfers
Promoting ways and means of ensuring a
(1992)
uniform interpretation and application of
international conventions and uniform laws in UNCITRAL Model Law on Procurement of
the field of the law of international trade. Goods, Construction and Services (1994)
Collecting and disseminating information on UNCITRAL Model Law on Electronic
national legislation and modern legal Commerce (1996)
developments, including case law, in the field Model Law on Cross-border Insolvency (1997)
of the law of international trade. UNCITRAL Model Law on Electronic
Establishing and maintaining a close Signatures (2001)
collaboration with the UN Conference on UNCITRAL Model Law on International
Trade and development. Commercial Conciliation (2002)
Maintaining liaison with other UN organs and Model Legislative Provisions on Privately
specialized agencies concerned with Financed Infrastructure Projects (2003)
international trade.
UNCITRAL also drafted the:
Conventions
UNCITRAL Arbitration Rules (1976) (text)
The Convention is an agreement among participating revised rules will be effective August 15, 2010;
states establishing obligations binding upon those pre-released, July 12, 2010
States that ratify or accede to it. A convention is UNCITRAL Conciliation Rules (1980)
designed to unify law by establishing binding legal UNCITRAL Arbitration Rules (1982)
obligations To become a party to a convention, States UNCITRAL Notes on Organizing Arbitral
are required formally to deposit a binding instrument Proceedings (1996)
of ratification or accession with the depositary. The
entry into force of a convention is usually dependent CLOUT (Case Law on UNCITRAL Texts)
upon the deposit of a minimum number of instruments
of ratification.
The Case Law on UNCITRAL Texts system is a
collection of court decisions and arbitral awards
UNCITRAL conventions: interpreting UNCITRAL texts.

the Convention on the Limitation Period in the CLOUT includes case abstracts in the six United
International Sale of Goods (1974) (text) Nations languages on the United Nations Convention
the United Nations Convention on the on Contracts for the International Sale of Goods
Carriage of Goods by Sea (1978) (CISG) (Vienna, 1980) and the UNCITRAL Model Law
the United Nations Convention on Contracts on International Commercial Arbitration (1985).
for the International Sale of Goods (1980)
the United Nations Convention on 2.2.6 WORLD TRADE ORGANIZATION
International Bills of Exchange and
International Promissory Notes (1988) (MARRAKESH AGREEMENT) (DISPUTE
the United Nations Convention on the Liability SETTLEMENT UNDERSTANDING)
of Operators of Transport Terminals in The Parties to this Agreement,
International Trade (1991)
the United Nations Convention on Recognizing that their relations in the field of trade
Independent Guarantees and Stand-by Letters
and economic endeavour should be conducted with a
of Credit (1995)
view to raising standards of living, ensuring full
the United Nations Convention on the
Assignment of Receivables in International employment and a large and steadily growing volume
Trade (2001) of real income and effective demand, and expanding
the United Nations Convention on the Use of the production of and trade in goods and services,
Electronic Communications in International while allowing for the optimal use of the worlds
Contracts (2005) resources in accordance with the objective of
the United Nations Convention on Contracts sustainable development, seeking both to protect and
for the International Carriage of Goods Wholly preserve the environment and to enhance the means
or Partly by Sea (2008)
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 28

for doing so in a manner consistent with their
respective needs and concerns at different levels of 4. The General Agreement on Tariffs and Trade
economic development, 1994 as specified in Annex 1A (hereinafter referred to
as GATT 1994) is legally distinct from the General
Recognizing further that there is need for positive Agreement on Tariffs and Trade, dated 30 October
efforts designed to ensure that developing countries, 1947, annexed to the Final Act Adopted at the
and especially the least developed among them, secure Conclusion of the Second Session of the Preparatory
a share in the growth in international trade Committee of the United Nations Conference on Trade
commensurate with the needs of their economic and Employment, as subsequently rectified, amended
development, or modified (hereinafter referred to as GATT 1947).

Being desirous of contributing to these objectives by Article III back to top


entering into reciprocal and mutually advantageous Functions of the WTO
arrangements directed to the substantial reduction of 1. The WTO shall facilitate the implementation,
tariffs and other barriers to trade and to the administration and operation, and further the
elimination of discriminatory treatment in objectives, of this Agreement and of the Multilateral
international trade relations, Trade Agreements, and shall also provide the
framework for the implementation, administration and
Resolved, therefore, to develop an integrated, more operation of the Plurilateral Trade Agreements.
viable and durable multilateral trading system
encompassing the General Agreement on Tariffs and 2. The WTO shall provide the forum for
Trade, the results of past trade liberalization efforts, negotiations among its Members concerning their
and all of the results of the Uruguay Round of multilateral trade relations in matters dealt with under
Multilateral Trade Negotiations, the agreements in the Annexes to this Agreement. The
WTO may also provide a forum for further
Determined to preserve the basic principles and to negotiations among its Members concerning their
further the objectives underlying this multilateral multilateral trade relations, and a framework for the
trading system, implementation of the results of such negotiations, as
may be decided by the Ministerial Conference.
Agree as follows:
3. The WTO shall administer the Understanding on
Article I back to top Rules and Procedures Governing the Settlement of
Establishment of the Organization Disputes (hereinafter referred to as the Dispute
Settlement Understanding or DSU) in Annex 2 to
The World Trade Organization (hereinafter referred to this Agreement.
as the WTO) is hereby established.
4. The WTO shall administer the Trade Policy
Article II back to top Review Mechanism (hereinafter referred to as the
Scope of the WTO TPRM) provided for in Annex 3 to this Agreement.

1. The WTO shall provide the common institutional 5. With a view to achieving greater coherence in
framework for the conduct of trade relations among its global economic policy-making, the WTO shall
Members in matters related to the agreements and cooperate, as appropriate, with the International
associated legal instruments included in the Annexes Monetary Fund and with the International Bank for
to this Agreement. Reconstruction and Development and its affiliated
agencies.
2. The agreements and associated legal instruments
included in Annexes 1, 2 and 3 (hereinafter referred to Article IV back to top
as Multilateral Trade Agreements) are integral parts Structure of the WTO
of this Agreement, binding on all Members.
1. There shall be a Ministerial Conference
3. The agreements and associated legal instruments composed of representatives of all the Members, which
included in Annex 4 (hereinafter referred to as shall meet at least once every two years. The
Plurilateral Trade Agreements) are also part of this Ministerial Conference shall carry out the functions of
Agreement for those Members that have accepted the WTO and take actions necessary to this effect. The
them, and are binding on those Members. The Ministerial Conference shall have the authority to take
Plurilateral Trade Agreements do not create either decisions on all matters under any of the Multilateral
obligations or rights for Members that have not Trade Agreements, if so requested by a Member, in
accepted them. accordance with the specific requirements for decision-
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 29

making in this Agreement and in the relevant 7. The Ministerial Conference shall establish a
Multilateral Trade Agreement. Committee on Trade and Development, a Committee
on Balance-of-Payments Restrictions and a Committee
2. There shall be a General Council composed of on Budget, Finance and Administration, which shall
representatives of all the Members, which shall meet as carry out the functions assigned to them by this
appropriate. In the intervals between meetings of the Agreement and by the Multilateral Trade Agreements,
Ministerial Conference, its functions shall be and any additional functions assigned to them by the
conducted by the General Council. The General General Council, and may establish such additional
Council shall also carry out the functions assigned to it Committees with such functions as it may deem
by this Agreement. The General Council shall establish appropriate. As part of its functions, the Committee on
its rules of procedure and approve the rules of Trade and Development shall periodically review the
procedure for the Committees provided for in special provisions in the Multilateral Trade
paragraph 7. Agreements in favour of the least-developed country
Members and report to the General Council for
3. The General Council shall convene as appropriate action. Membership in these Committees
appropriate to discharge the responsibilities of the shall be open to representatives of all Members.
Dispute Settlement Body provided for in the Dispute
Settlement Understanding. The Dispute Settlement 8. The bodies provided for under the Plurilateral
Body may have its own chairman and shall establish Trade Agreements shall carry out the functions
such rules of procedure as it deems necessary for the assigned to them under those Agreements and shall
fulfilment of those responsibilities. operate within the institutional framework of the
WTO. These bodies shall keep the General Council
4. The General Council shall convene as informed of their activities on a regular basis.
appropriate to discharge the responsibilities of the
Trade Policy Review Body provided for in the TPRM.
The Trade Policy Review Body may have its own Article V back to top
chairman and shall establish such rules of procedure as Relations with Other Organizations
it deems necessary for the fulfilment of those
responsibilities. 1. The General Council shall make appropriate
arrangements for effective cooperation with other
5. There shall be a Council for Trade in Goods, a intergovernmental organizations that have
Council for Trade in Services and a Council for Trade- responsibilities related to those of the WTO.
Related Aspects of Intellectual Property Rights
(hereinafter referred to as the Council for TRIPS), 2. The General Council may make appropriate
which shall operate under the general guidance of the arrangements for consultation and cooperation with
General Council. The Council for Trade in Goods shall non-governmental organizations concerned with
oversee the functioning of the Multilateral Trade matters related to those of the WTO.
Agreements in Annex 1A. The Council for Trade in
Services shall oversee the functioning of the General
Agreement on Trade in Services (hereinafter referred Article VI back to top
to as GATS). The Council for TRIPS shall oversee the The Secretariat
functioning of the Agreement on Trade-Related
Aspects of Intellectual Property Rights (hereinafter 1. There shall be a Secretariat of the WTO
referred to as the Agreement on TRIPS). These (hereinafter referred to as the Secretariat) headed by
Councils shall carry out the functions assigned to them a Director-General.
by their respective agreements and by the General
Council. They shall establish their respective rules of 2. The Ministerial Conference shall appoint the
procedure subject to the approval of the General Director-General and adopt regulations setting out the
Council. Membership in these Councils shall be open powers, duties, conditions of service and term of office
to representatives of all Members. These Councils shall of the Director-General.
meet as necessary to carry out their functions.
3. The Director-General shall appoint the members
6. The Council for Trade in Goods, the Council for of the staff of the Secretariat and determine their
Trade in Services and the Council for TRIPS shall duties and conditions of service in accordance with
establish subsidiary bodies as required. These regulations adopted by the Ministerial Conference.
subsidiary bodies shall establish their respective rules
of procedure subject to the approval of their respective 4. The responsibilities of the Director-General and
Councils. of the staff of the Secretariat shall be exclusively
international in character. In the discharge of their
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 30

duties, the Director-General and the staff of the 2. The WTO shall be accorded by each of its
Secretariat shall not seek or accept instructions from Members such privileges and immunities as are
any government or any other authority external to the necessary for the exercise of its functions.
WTO. They shall refrain from any action which might
adversely reflect on their position as international 3. The officials of the WTO and the representatives
officials. The Members of the WTO shall respect the of the Members shall similarly be accorded by each of
international character of the responsibilities of the its Members such privileges and immunities as are
Director-General and of the staff of the Secretariat and necessary for the independent exercise of their
shall not seek to influence them in the discharge of functions in connection with the WTO.
their duties.
4. The privileges and immunities to be accorded by
a Member to the WTO, its officials, and the
Article VII back to top representatives of its Members shall be similar to the
Budget and Contributions privileges and immunities stipulated in the Convention
on the Privileges and Immunities of the Specialized
1. The Director-General shall present to the Agencies, approved by the General Assembly of the
Committee on Budget, Finance and Administration the United Nations on 21 November 1947.
annual budget estimate and financial statement of the
WTO. The Committee on Budget, Finance and 5. The WTO may conclude a headquarters
Administration shall review the annual budget agreement.
estimate and the financial statement presented by the
Director-General and make recommendations thereon
to the General Council. The annual budget estimate Article IX back to top
shall be subject to approval by the General Council. Decision-Making

2. The Committee on Budget, Finance and 1. The WTO shall continue the practice of decision-
Administration shall propose to the General Council making by consensus followed under GATT 1947(1).
financial regulations which shall include provisions Except as otherwise provided, where a decision cannot
setting out: be arrived at by consensus, the matter at issue shall be
decided by voting. At meetings of the Ministerial
(a) the scale of contributions apportioning the Conference and the General Council, each Member of
expenses of the WTO among its Members; and the WTO shall have one vote. Where the European
Communities exercise their right to vote, they shall
have a number of votes equal to the number of their
(b) the measures to be taken in respect of Members member States(2)which are Members of the WTO.
in arrears. Decisions of the Ministerial Conference and the
General Council shall be taken by a majority of the
The financial regulations shall be based, as far as votes cast, unless otherwise provided in this
practicable, on the regulations and practices of GATT Agreement or in the relevant Multilateral Trade
1947. Agreement(3).

3. The General Council shall adopt the financial 2. The Ministerial Conference and the General
regulations and the annual budget estimate by a two- Council shall have the exclusive authority to adopt
thirds majority comprising more than half of the interpretations of this Agreement and of the
Members of the WTO. Multilateral Trade Agreements. In the case of an
interpretation of a Multilateral Trade Agreement in
4. Each Member shall promptly contribute to the Annex 1, they shall exercise their authority on the basis
WTO its share in the expenses of the WTO in of a recommendation by the Council overseeing the
accordance with the financial regulations adopted by functioning of that Agreement. The decision to adopt
the General Council. an interpretation shall be taken by a three-fourths
majority of the Members. This paragraph shall not be
used in a manner that would undermine the
Article VIII back to top amendment provisions in Article X.
Status of the WTO
3. In exceptional circumstances, the Ministerial
1. The WTO shall have legal personality, and shall Conference may decide to waive an obligation imposed
be accorded by each of its Members such legal capacity on a Member by this Agreement or any of the
as may be necessary for the exercise of its functions. Multilateral Trade Agreements, provided that any such
decision shall be taken by three fourths (4) of the
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 31

Members unless otherwise provided for in this tabled formally at the Ministerial Conference any
paragraph. decision by the Ministerial Conference to submit the
proposed amendment to the Members for acceptance
(a) A request for a waiver concerning this shall be taken by consensus. Unless the provisions of
Agreement shall be submitted to the Ministerial paragraphs 2, 5 or 6 apply, that decision shall specify
Conference for consideration pursuant to the practice whether the provisions of paragraphs 3 or 4 shall
of decision-making by consensus. The Ministerial apply. If consensus is reached, the Ministerial
Conference shall establish a time-period, which shall Conference shall forthwith submit the proposed
not exceed 90 days, to consider the request. If amendment to the Members for acceptance. If
consensus is not reached during the time-period, any consensus is not reached at a meeting of the
decision to grant a waiver shall be taken by three Ministerial Conference within the established period,
fourths4 of the Members. the Ministerial Conference shall decide by a two-thirds
majority of the Members whether to submit the
proposed amendment to the Members for acceptance.
(b) A request for a waiver concerning the Except as provided in paragraphs 2, 5 and 6, the
Multilateral Trade Agreements in Annexes 1A or 1B or provisions of paragraph 3 shall apply to the proposed
1C and their annexes shall be submitted initially to the amendment, unless the Ministerial Conference decides
Council for Trade in Goods, the Council for Trade in by a three-fourths majority of the Members that the
Services or the Council for TRIPS, respectively, for provisions of paragraph 4 shall apply.
consideration during a time-period which shall not
exceed 90 days. At the end of the time-period, the 2. Amendments to the provisions of this Article and
relevant Council shall submit a report to the to the provisions of the following Articles shall take
Ministerial Conference. effect only upon acceptance by all Members:

4. A decision by the Ministerial Conference Article IX of this Agreement;


granting a waiver shall state the exceptional Articles I and II of GATT 1994;
circumstances justifying the decision, the terms and Article II:1 of GATS;
conditions governing the application of the waiver, and Article 4 of the Agreement on TRIPS.
the date on which the waiver shall terminate. Any
waiver granted for a period of more than one year shall 3. Amendments to provisions of this Agreement, or
be reviewed by the Ministerial Conference not later of the Multilateral Trade Agreements in Annexes 1A
than one year after it is granted, and thereafter and 1C, other than those listed in paragraphs 2 and 6,
annually until the waiver terminates. In each review, of a nature that would alter the rights and obligations
the Ministerial Conference shall examine whether the of the Members, shall take effect for the Members that
exceptional circumstances justifying the waiver still have accepted them upon acceptance by two thirds of
exist and whether the terms and conditions attached to the Members and thereafter for each other Member
the waiver have been met. The Ministerial Conference, upon acceptance by it. The Ministerial Conference may
on the basis of the annual review, may extend, modify decide by a three-fourths majority of the Members that
or terminate the waiver. any amendment made effective under this paragraph is
of such a nature that any Member which has not
5. Decisions under a Plurilateral Trade Agreement, accepted it within a period specified by the Ministerial
including any decisions on interpretations and waivers, Conference in each case shall be free to withdraw from
shall be governed by the provisions of that Agreement. the WTO or to remain a Member with the consent of
the Ministerial Conference.

Article X back to top 4. Amendments to provisions of this Agreement or


Amendments of the Multilateral Trade Agreements in Annexes 1A
and 1C, other than those listed in paragraphs 2 and 6,
1. Any Member of the WTO may initiate a proposal of a nature that would not alter the rights and
to amend the provisions of this Agreement or the obligations of the Members, shall take effect for all
Multilateral Trade Agreements in Annex 1 by Members upon acceptance by two thirds of the
submitting such proposal to the Ministerial Members.
Conference. The Councils listed in paragraph 5 of
Article IV may also submit to the Ministerial 5. Except as provided in paragraph 2 above,
Conference proposals to amend the provisions of the amendments to Parts I, II and III of GATS and the
corresponding Multilateral Trade Agreements in respective annexes shall take effect for the Members
Annex 1 the functioning of which they oversee. Unless that have accepted them upon acceptance by two thirds
the Ministerial Conference decides on a longer period, of the Members and thereafter for each Member upon
for a period of 90 days after the proposal has been acceptance by it. The Ministerial Conference may
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 32

decide by a three-fourths majority of the Members that
any amendment made effective under the preceding 2. The least-developed countries recognized as such
provision is of such a nature that any Member which by the United Nations will only be required to
has not accepted it within a period specified by the undertake commitments and concessions to the extent
Ministerial Conference in each case shall be free to consistent with their individual development, financial
withdraw from the WTO or to remain a Member with and trade needs or their administrative and
the consent of the Ministerial Conference. institutional capabilities.
Amendments to Parts IV, V and VI of GATS and the
respective annexes shall take effect for all Members
upon acceptance by two thirds of the Members. Article XII back to top
Accession
6. Notwithstanding the other provisions of this
Article, amendments to the Agreement on TRIPS 1. Any State or separate customs territory
meeting the requirements of paragraph 2 of Article 71 possessing full autonomy in the conduct of its external
thereof may be adopted by the Ministerial Conference commercial relations and of the other matters
without further formal acceptance process. provided for in this Agreement and the Multilateral
Trade Agreements may accede to this Agreement, on
7. Any Member accepting an amendment to this terms to be agreed between it and the WTO. Such
Agreement or to a Multilateral Trade Agreement in accession shall apply to this Agreement and the
Annex 1 shall deposit an instrument of acceptance with Multilateral Trade Agreements annexed thereto.
the Director-General of the WTO within the period of
acceptance specified by the Ministerial Conference. 2. Decisions on accession shall be taken by the
Ministerial Conference. The Ministerial Conference
8. Any Member of the WTO may initiate a proposal shall approve the agreement on the terms of accession
to amend the provisions of the Multilateral Trade by a two-thirds majority of the Members of the WTO.
Agreements in Annexes 2 and 3 by submitting such
proposal to the Ministerial Conference. The decision to 3. Accession to a Plurilateral Trade Agreement shall
approve amendments to the Multilateral Trade be governed by the provisions of that Agreement.
Agreement in Annex 2 shall be made by consensus and
these amendments shall take effect for all Members
upon approval by the Ministerial Conference. Article XIII back to top
Decisions to approve amendments to the Multilateral Non-Application of Multilateral Trade Agreements
Trade Agreement in Annex 3 shall take effect for all between Particular Members
Members upon approval by the Ministerial
Conference. 1. This Agreement and the Multilateral Trade
Agreements in Annexes 1 and 2 shall not apply as
9. The Ministerial Conference, upon the request of between any Member and any other Member if either
the Members parties to a trade agreement, may decide of the Members, at the time either becomes a Member,
exclusively by consensus to add that agreement to does not consent to such application.
Annex 4. The Ministerial Conference, upon the request
of the Members parties to a Plurilateral Trade 2. Paragraph 1 may be invoked between original
Agreement, may decide to delete that Agreement from Members of the WTO which were contracting parties
Annex 4. to GATT 1947 only where Article XXXV of that
Agreement had been invoked earlier and was effective
10. Amendments to a Plurilateral Trade Agreement as between those contracting parties at the time of
shall be governed by the provisions of that Agreement. entry into force for them of this Agreement.

3. Paragraph 1 shall apply between a Member and


Article XI back to top another Member which has acceded under Article XII
Original Membership only if the Member not consenting to the application
has so notified the Ministerial Conference before the
1. The contracting parties to GATT 1947 as of the approval of the agreement on the terms of accession by
date of entry into force of this Agreement, and the the Ministerial Conference.
European Communities, which accept this Agreement
and the Multilateral Trade Agreements and for which 4. The Ministerial Conference may review the
Schedules of Concessions and Commitments are operation of this Article in particular cases at the
annexed to GATT 1994 and for which Schedules of request of any Member and make appropriate
Specific Commitments are annexed to GATS shall recommendations.
become original Members of the WTO.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 33

5. Non-application of a Plurilateral Trade Withdrawal
Agreement between parties to that Agreement shall be
governed by the provisions of that Agreement. 1. Any Member may withdraw from this Agreement.
Such withdrawal shall apply both to this Agreement
and the Multilateral Trade Agreements and shall take
Article XIV back to top effect upon the expiration of six months from the date
Acceptance, Entry into Force and Deposit on which written notice of withdrawal is received by
the Director-General of the WTO.
1. This Agreement shall be open for acceptance, by
signature or otherwise, by contracting parties to GATT 2. Withdrawal from a Plurilateral Trade Agreement
1947, and the European Communities, which are shall be governed by the provisions of that Agreement.
eligible to become original Members of the WTO in
accordance with Article XI of this Agreement. Such
acceptance shall apply to this Agreement and the Article XVI back to top
Multilateral Trade Agreements annexed hereto. This Miscellaneous Provisions
Agreement and the Multilateral Trade Agreements
annexed hereto shall enter into force on the date 1. Except as otherwise provided under this
determined by Ministers in accordance with paragraph Agreement or the Multilateral Trade Agreements, the
3 of the Final Act Embodying the Results of the WTO shall be guided by the decisions, procedures and
Uruguay Round of Multilateral Trade Negotiations and customary practices followed by the CONTRACTING
shall remain open for acceptance for a period of two PARTIES to GATT 1947 and the bodies established in
years following that date unless the Ministers decide the framework of GATT 1947.
otherwise. An acceptance following the entry into force
of this Agreement shall enter into force on the 30th 2. To the extent practicable, the Secretariat of GATT
day following the date of such acceptance. 1947 shall become the Secretariat of the WTO, and the
Director-General to the CONTRACTING PARTIES to
2. A Member which accepts this Agreement after its GATT 1947, until such time as the Ministerial
entry into force shall implement those concessions and Conference has appointed a Director-General in
obligations in the Multilateral Trade Agreements that accordance with paragraph 2 of Article VI of this
are to be implemented over a period of time starting Agreement, shall serve as Director-General of the
with the entry into force of this Agreement as if it had WTO.
accepted this Agreement on the date of its entry into
force. 3. In the event of a conflict between a provision of
this Agreement and a provision of any of the
3. Until the entry into force of this Agreement, the Multilateral Trade Agreements, the provision of this
text of this Agreement and the Multilateral Trade Agreement shall prevail to the extent of the conflict.
Agreements shall be deposited with the Director-
General to the CONTRACTING PARTIES to GATT 4. Each Member shall ensure the conformity of its
1947. The Director-General shall promptly furnish a laws, regulations and administrative procedures with
certified true copy of this Agreement and the its obligations as provided in the annexed Agreements.
Multilateral Trade Agreements, and a notification of
each acceptance thereof, to each government and the 5. No reservations may be made in respect of any
European Communities having accepted this provision of this Agreement. Reservations in respect of
Agreement. This Agreement and the Multilateral Trade any of the provisions of the Multilateral Trade
Agreements, and any amendments thereto, shall, upon Agreements may only be made to the extent provided
the entry into force of this Agreement, be deposited for in those Agreements. Reservations in respect of a
with the Director-General of the WTO. provision of a Plurilateral Trade Agreement shall be
governed by the provisions of that Agreement.
4. The acceptance and entry into force of a
Plurilateral Trade Agreement shall be governed by the 6. This Agreement shall be registered in accordance
provisions of that Agreement. Such Agreements shall with the provisions of Article 102 of the Charter of the
be deposited with the Director-General to the United Nations.
CONTRACTING PARTIES to GATT 1947. Upon the
entry into force of this Agreement, such Agreements DONE at Marrakesh this fifteenth day of April one
shall be deposited with the Director-General of the thousand nine hundred and ninety-four, in a single
WTO. copy, in the English, French and Spanish languages,
each text being authentic.

Article XV back to top Explanatory Notes: back to top


ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 34

procedure are target figures
The terms country or countries as used in this The agreement is flexible. In addition, the countries
Agreement and the Multilateral Trade Agreements are can settle
to be understood to include any separate customs their dispute themselves at any stage.
territory Member of the WTO. Totals are also approximate.

In the case of a separate customs territory Member of 60 days


the WTO, where an expression in this Agreement and Consultations, mediation, etc.
the Multilateral Trade Agreements is qualified by the 45 days
term national, such expression shall be read as Panel set up and panellists appointed
pertaining to that customs territory, unless otherwise 6 months
specified. Final panel report to parties
3 weeks
Dispute settlement is regarded by the World Trade Final panel report to WTO members
Organization (WTO) as the central pillar of the 60 days
multilateral trading system, and as the organization's Dispute Settlement Body adopts report (if no appeal)
"unique contribution to the stability of the global Total = 1 year (without appeal)
economy".[1] A dispute arises when one member 6090 days
country adopts a trade policy measure or takes some Appeals report
action that one or more fellow members considers to a 30 days
breach of WTO agreements or to be a failure to live up Dispute Settlement Body adopts appeals report
to obligations. By joining the WTO, member countries Total = 1 year 3 months (with appeal)
have agreed that if they believe fellow members are in
violation of trade rules, they will use the multilateral Source:Understanding the WTO: Settling Disputes - A
system of settling disputes instead of taking action unique contribution
unilaterally this entails abiding by agreed
procedures (Dispute Settlement Understanding) and The operation of the WTO dispute settlement process
respecting judgments, primarily of the Dispute involves the parties and third parties to a case and may
Settlement Body (DSB), the WTO organ responsible also involve the DSB panels, the Appellate Body, the
for adjudication of disputes.[2] A former WTO WTO Secretariat, arbitrators, independent experts,
Director-General characterized the WTO dispute and several specialized institutions.[6] The General
settlement system as "the most active international Council discharges its responsibilities under the DSU
adjudicative mechanism in the world today."[3] through the Dispute Settlement Body (DSB).[7] Like
the General Council, the DSB is composed of
Dispute Settlement Understanding representatives of all WTO Members. The DSB is
responsible for administering the DSU, i.e. for
Prompt compliance with recommendations or rulings overseeing the entire dispute settlement process. It
of the DSB is essential in order to ensure effective also has the authority to establish panels, adopt panel
resolution of disputes to the benefit of all Members. and Appellate Body reports, maintain surveillance of
implementation of rulings and recommendations, and
World Trade Organization, Article 21.1 of the DSU authorize the suspension of obligations under the
covered agreements.[8] The DSB meets as often as
In 1994, the WTO members agreed on the necessary to adhere to the timeframes provided for in
Understanding on Rules and Procedures Governing the DSU.[9]
the Settlement of Disputes or Dispute Settlement
Understanding (DSU) (annexed to the "Final Act" [edit] From complaint to final report
signed in Marrakesh in 1994).[4] Pursuant to the rules
detailed in the DSU, member states can engage in If a member state considers that a measure adopted by
consultations to resolve trade disputes pertaining to a another member state has deprived it of a benefit
"covered agreement" or, if unsuccessful, have a WTO accruing to it under one of the covered agreements, it
panel hear the case.[5] The priority, however, is to may call for consultations with the other member
settle disputes, through consultations if possible. By state.[10] If consultations fail to resolve the dispute
January 2008, only about 136 of the nearly 369 cases within 60 days after receipt of the request for
had reached the full panel process.[2] consultations, the complainant state may request the
establishment of a Panel. It is not possible for the
Duration of a Dispute Settlement procedure respondent state to prevent or delay the establishment
of a Panel, unless the DSB by consensus decides
These approximate periods for each stage of a dispute otherwise.[11] The panel, normally consisting of three
settlement members appointed ad hoc by the Secretariat, sits to
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 35

receive written and oral submissions of the parties, on compliance, that issue is to be the subject of binding
the basis of which it is expected to make findings and arbitration; the arbitrator is to be appointed by
conclusions for presentation to the DSB. The agreement of the parties. If there is a disagreement as
proceedings are confidential, and even when private to the satisfactory nature of the measures adopted by
parties are directly concerned, they are not permitted the respondent state to comply with the report, that
to attend or make submissions separate from those of disagreement is to be decided by a panel, if possible
the state in question.[12] Disputes can also arise under the same panel that heard the original dispute, but
Non-violation nullification of benefits claims.[13] apparently without the possibility of appeal from its
decision. The DSU provides that even if the respondent
The final version of the panel's report is distributed asserts that it has complied with the recommendation
first to the parties; two weeks later it is circulated to all in a report, and even if the complainant party or the
the members of the WTO. In sharp contrast with other panel accepts that assertion, the DSB is supposed to
systems, the report is required to be adopted at a keep the implementation of the recommendations
meeting of the DSB within 60 days of its circulation, under surveillance.[19]
unless the DSB by consensus decides not to adopt the
report or a party to the dispute gives notice of its [edit] Compensation and retaliation
intention to appeal.[14] A party may appeal a panel
report to the standing Appellate Body, but only on If all else fails, two more possibilities are set out in the
issues of law and legal interpretations developed by the DSU:
panel. Each appeal is heard by three members of the If a member fails within the "reasonable period" to
permanent seven-member Appellate Body set up by carry out the recommendations and rulings, it may
the Dispute Settlement Body and broadly representing negotiate with the complaining state for a mutually
the range of WTO membership. Members of the acceptable compensation. Compensation is not
Appellate Body have four-year terms. They must be defined, but may be expected to consist of the grant of
individuals with recognized standing in the field of law a concession by the respondent state on a product or
and international trade, not affiliated with any service of interest to the complainant state.[20]
government. The Appellate Body may uphold, modify If no agreement on compensation is reached within
or reverse the panel's legal findings and conclusions. twenty days of the expiry of the "reasonable period",
Normally appeals should not last more than 60 days, the prevailing state may request authorization from the
with an absolute maximum of 90 days.[15] The DSB to suspend application to the member concerned
possibility for appeal makes the WTO dispute of concessions or other obligations under the covered
resolution system unique among the judicial processes agreements.[20] The DSU makes clear that retaliation
of dispute settlement in general public international is not favored, and sets the criteria for retaliation.[21]
law.[16] In contrast to prior GATT practice, authorization to
suspend concessions in this context is semi-automatic,
Members may express their views on the report of the in that the DSB "shall grant the authorization [...]
Appellate Body, but they cannot derail it. The DSU within thirty days of the expiry of the reasonable
states unequivocally that an Appellate Body report period", unless it decides by consensus to reject the
shall be adopted by the DSB and unconditionally request.[22] Any suspension or concession or other
accepted by the parties, unless the DSB decides by obligation is to be temporary. If the respondent state
consensus within thirty days of its circulation not to objects to the level of suspension proposed or to the
adopt the report.[17] Unless otherwise agreed by the consistency of the proposed suspension with the DSU
parties to the dispute, the period from establishment of principles, still another arbitration is provided for, if
the panel to consideration of the report by the DSB possible by the original panel members or by an
shall as a general rule not exceed nine months if there arbitrator or arbitrators appointed by the Director-
is no appeal, and twelve months if there is an General, to be completed within sixty days from
appeal.[18] expiration of the reasonable period.[22]

[edit] Compliance While such "retaliatory measures" are a strong


mechanism when applied by economically powerful
The DSU addresses the question of compliance and countries like the United States or the European
retaliation. Within thirty days of the adoption of the Union, when applied by economically weak countries
report, the member concerned is to inform the DSB of against stronger ones, they can often be ignored.[23]
its intentions in respect of implementation of the This has been the case, for example, with the March
recommendations and rulings. If the member explains 2005 Appellate Body ruling in case DS 267,[24] which
that it is impracticable to comply immediately with the declared US cotton subsidies illegal.[citation needed]
recommendations and rulings, it is to have a Whether or not the complainant has taken a measure
"reasonable period of time" in which to comply. If no of retaliation, surveillance by the DSB is to continue, to
agreement is reached about the reasonable period for
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 36

see whether the recommendations of the panel or the Signed June 10, 1958
Appellate Body have been implemented.[25]
Location New York, US

[edit] Developing countries Effective 7 June 1959

Condition 3 ratifications
Like most of the agreements adopted in the Uruguay
Signatories 24
Round, the DSU contains several provisions directed to
developing countries.[26] The Understanding states Parties 146
that members should give "special attention" to the Depositaries Secretary-General of the United Nations
problems and interests of developing country
Chinese, English, French, Russian and
members.[27] Further, if one party to a dispute is a Languages
Spanish
developing country, that party is entitled to have at
least one panelist who comes from a developing Convention on the Recognition and Enforcement of Foreign
country.[28] If a complaint is brought against a Arbitral Awards at Wikisource
developing country, the time for consultations (before
a panel is convened) may be extended, and if the The Convention on the Recognition and
dispute goes to a panel, the deadlines for the Enforcement of Foreign Arbitral Awards, also
known as the New York Convention, was adopted
developing country to make its submissions may be
by a United Nations diplomatic conference on 10 June
relaxed.[29] Also, the Secretariat is authorized to make 1958 and entered into force on 7 June 1959. The
a qualified legal expert available to any developing Convention requires courts of contracting states to give
country on request. Formal complaints against least effect to private agreements to arbitrate and to
developed countries are discouraged, and if recognize and enforce arbitration awards made in
consultations fail, the Director-General and the other contracting states. Widely considered the
Chairman of the DSB stand ready to offer their good foundational instrument for international arbitration,
it applies to arbitrations which are not considered as
offices before a formal request for a panel is made.[30]
domestic awards in the state where recognition and
As to substance, the DSU provides that the report of enforcement is sought. Though other international
panels shall "explicitly indicate" how account has been conventions apply to the cross-border enforcement of
taken of the "differential and more favorable arbitration awards, the New York Convention is by far
treatment" provisions of the agreement under which the most important.
the complaint is brought. Whether or not a developing
country is a party to a particular proceeding, Contents
"particular attention" is to be paid to the interests of [hide]
the developing countries in the course of implementing
recommendations and rulings of panels.[31] In order 1 Background
to assist developing countries in overcoming their 2 Summary of provisions
limited expertise in WTO law and assist them in 3 Parties to the New York Convention
managing complex trade disputes, an Advisory Centre 4 States which are Not Party to the New York
Convention
on WTO Law was established in 2001. The aim is to
5 United States Issues
level the playing field for these countries and customs
6 External links
territories in the WTO system by enabling them to 7 References
have a full understanding of their rights and
obligations under the WTO Agreement
Background
In 1953, the International Chamber of Commerce
(ICC) produced the first draft Convention on the
2.3 ENFORCEMENT AND RECOGNITION Recognition and Enforcement of International Arbitral
OF AWARDS Awards to the United Nations Economic and Social
Council. With slight modifications, the Council
submitted the convention to the International
Convention on the Recognition and Conference in the Spring of 1958. The Conference was
Enforcement of Foreign Arbitral Awards chaired by Willem Schurmann, the Dutch Permanent
Representative to the United Nations and Oscar
Schachter, a leading figure in international law who
From Wikipedia, the free encyclopedia later taught at Columbia Law School and the Columbia
School of International and Public Affairs, and served
Jump to: navigation, search as the President of the American Society of
International Law.

New York Convention


International arbitration is an increasingly popular
Convention on the Recognition and Enforcement of means of alternative dispute resolution for cross-
Foreign Arbitral Awards border commercial transactions. The primary
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 37

advantage of international arbitration over court of the place where the hearing took place (the
litigation is enforceability: an international arbitration "lex loci arbitri");
award is enforceable in most countries in the world. 6. the award has not yet become binding upon
Other advantages of international arbitration include the parties, or has been set aside or suspended
the ability to select a neutral forum to resolve disputes, by a competent authority, either in the country
that arbitration awards are final and not ordinarily where the arbitration took place, or pursuant
subject to appeal, the ability to choose flexible to the law of the arbitration agreement;
procedures for the arbitration, and confidentiality. 7. the subject matter of the award was not
capable of resolution by arbitration; or
Once a dispute between parties is settled, the winning 8. enforcement would be contrary to "public
party needs to collect the award or judgment. Unless policy".
the assets of the losing party are located in the country
where the court judgment was rendered, the winning
party needs to obtain a court judgment in the
jurisdiction where the other party resides or where its
assets are located. Unless there is a treaty on Parties to the New York Convention
recognition of court judgments between the country As of May 2012, 146 of the 193 United Nations
where the judgment is rendered and the country where Member States have adopted the New York
the winning party seeks to collect, the winning party Convention. The Convention has also been ratified by
will be unable to use the court judgment to collect. Holy See and the Cook Islands. About fifty of the U.N.
Member States have not adopted the Convention. In
Countries which have adopted the New York addition, Taiwan has not adopted the Convention and
Convention have agreed to recognize and enforce a number of British Overseas Territories have not had
international arbitration awards. As of July 23, 2011, the Convention extended to them by Order in Council.
there are 146 signatories which have adopted the New British Overseas Territories to which the New York
York Convention: 144 of the 193 United Nations Convention has not yet been extended by Order in
Member States, the Cook Islands (a New Zealand Council are: Anguilla, British Virgin Islands, Falkland
dependent territory), and the Holy See have adopted Islands, Turks and Caicos Islands, Montserrat, Saint
the New York Convention.[1] 49 U.N. Member States Helena (including Ascension and Tristan da Cunha).
have not yet adopted the New York Convention. A The British Virgin Islands have implemented the New
number of British dependent territories have not yet York Convention into domestic law (Arbitration
had the Convention extended to them by Order in Ordinance 1976), although Britain has never issued an
Council. Order in Council legally extending the New York
Convention to the British Virgin Islands.
Summary of provisions
Under the Convention, an arbitration award issued in United States Issues
any other state can generally be freely enforced in any Under American law, the recognition of foreign
other contracting state (save that some contracting arbitral awards is governed by chapter 2 of the Federal
states may elect to enforce only awards from other Arbitration Act, which incorporate the New York
contracting states - the "reciprocity" reservation), only Convention.[2]
subject to certain, limited defenses. These defenses
are:

1. a party to the arbitration agreement was,


under the law applicable to him, under some However, the New York Convention on the
incapacity; Recognition and Enforcement of Foreign
2. the arbitration agreement was not valid under Arbitral Awards (the "Convention") does not
its governing law; preempt state law. In Foster v. Neilson, the Supreme
3. a party was not given proper notice of the Court held Our constitution declares a treaty to be the
appointment of the arbitrator or of the law of the land. It is, consequently, to be regarded in
arbitration proceedings, or was otherwise courts of justice as equivalent to an act of the
unable to present its case; Legislature, whenever it operates of itself without the
4. the award deals with an issue not aid of any legislative provision. Foster v. Neilson, 27
contemplated by or not falling within the U.S. 253, 314 (1829). See also Valentine v. U.S. ex rel.
terms of the submission to arbitration, or Neidecker, 57 S.Ct. 100, 103 (1936); Medellin v.
contains matters beyond the scope of the Dretke, 125 S.Ct. 2088, 2103 (2005); Sanchez-Llamas
arbitration (subject to the proviso that an v. Oregon, 126 S.Ct. 2669, 2695 (2006). Thus, over a
award which contains decisions on such course of 181 years, the United States Supreme Court
matters may be enforced to the extent that it has repeatedly held that a self-executing treaty is an
contains decisions on matters submitted to act of the Legislature (i.e., act of Congress).
arbitration which can be separated from those
matters not so submitted);
5. the composition of the arbitral tribunal was
not in accordance with the agreement of the
parties or, failing such agreement, with the law
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 38

2.4 TYPES OF ADR evidence in the case and imposes a decision that is
legally binding for both sides and enforceable.[1] Other
2.4.1 1. Negotiation forms of ADR include mediation[2] (a form of
settlement negotiation facilitated by a neutral third
party) and non-binding resolution by experts.
Negotiation involves conferring with another with a Arbitration is often used for the resolution of
view to agreement. There are no formal rules to commercial disputes, particularly in the context of
governing how negotiations should be conducted, international commercial transactions. The use of
although there are culturally acceptable approaches. arbitration is also frequently employed in consumer
Negotiation is much more than persuasion. Although and employment matters, where arbitration may be
you can try to persuade a difficult person to see it your mandated by the terms of employment or commercial
way, you are merely discussing or arguing your way contracts.
through a problem unless you can vary the terms and
commit resources.
Arbitration can be either voluntary or mandatory
(although mandatory arbitration can only come from a
2.4.2 Assisted negotiation statute or from a contract that is voluntarily entered
into, where the parties agree to hold all existing or
Here the parties are assisted in their negotiations by a future disputes to arbitration, without necessarily
third party who coaches or represents them in the knowing, specifically, what disputes will ever occur)
negotiations without a formalised structure. Lawyers, and can be either binding or non-binding. Non-binding
accountants, trusted friends or other technical or arbitration is similar to mediation in that a decision can
professional advisers are often called upon to fulfil this not be imposed on the parties. However, the principal
role. distinction is that whereas a mediator will try to help
the parties find a middle ground on which to
2.4.3 2. Mediation compromise, the (non-binding) arbitrator remains
totally removed from the settlement process and will
only give a determination of liability and, if appropriate,
In mediation, a neutral third party mediator facilitates
an indication of the quantum of damages payable. By
the negotiation of a solution by the parties involved.
one definition arbitration is binding and so non-binding
LEADR NZ mainly deals with mediation. Explore our
arbitration is technically not arbitration.
mediation section for full details.

Arbitration is a proceeding in which a dispute is


2.4.4 3. Conciliation
resolved by an impartial adjudicator whose decision
This is used to refer to a number of different the parties to the dispute have agreed, or legislation
processes. The most common are: has decreed, will be final and binding. There are
where a third party acts as a conduit, limited rights of review and appeal of arbitration
transmitting offers of settlement awards. Arbitration is not the same as:
between the parties but taking a much
less active role in the negotiation than
a mediator, or judicial proceedings, although in some jurisdictions,
the processes used in agencies that court proceedings are sometimes referred as
administer legislative rights, in which arbitrations[3]
case participation may be mandatory
and the conciliator may be obliged to alternative dispute resolution (or ADR)
ensure that the solution reached
adheres to the relevant legislation. Parties often seek to resolve their disputes through
arbitration because of a number of perceived potential
2.4.5 4. Arbitration advantages over judicial proceedings:

Arbitration involves submitting a dispute to an when the subject matter of the dispute is highly
arbitrator who hears arguments from the parties then technical, arbitrators with an appropriate degree of
resolves the conflict by making a decision (usually expertise can be appointed (as one cannot "choose
binding) called an award. The courts can enforce the the judge" in litigation)[5]
award. There are varying degree of formality in how
evidence is presented during arbitration. This arbitration is often faster than litigation in court )[6]
approach provides greater flexibility and more party
control than the formal court system. It is also usually
private and confidential. arbitration can be cheaper and more flexible for
businesses[citation needed]
Arbitration, a form of alternative dispute resolution
(ADR), is a legal technique for the resolution of arbitral proceedings and an arbitral award are
disputes outside the courts, where the parties to a generally non-public, and can be made confidential[7]
dispute refer it to one or more persons (the
"arbitrators", "arbiters" or "arbitral tribunal"), by whose in arbitral proceedings the language of arbitration may
decision (the "award") they agree to be bound. It is a be chosen, whereas in judicial proceedings the official
resolution technique in which a third party reviews the
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 39

language of the country of the competent court will be arbitrators are generally unable to enforce
automatically applied interlocutory measures against a party, making it
easier for a party to take steps to avoid enforcement of
because of the provisions of the New York Convention member or a small group of members in arbitration
1958, arbitration awards are generally easier to due to increasing legal fees, without explaining to the
enforce in other nations than court judgments members the adverse consequences of an
unfavorable ruling
in most legal systems there are very limited avenues
for appeal of an arbitral award, which is sometimes an rule of applicable law is not necessarily binding on the
advantage because it limits the duration of the dispute arbitrators, although they cannot disregard the
and any associated liability law[citation needed]

Some of the disadvantages include: discovery may be more limited in arbitration or entirely
nonexistent
arbitration may become highly complex[citation
needed] the potential to generate billings by attorneys may be
less than pursuing the dispute through trial
arbitration may be subject to pressures from powerful
law firms representing the stronger and wealthier unlike court judgments, arbitration awards themselves
party[citation needed] are not directly enforceable. A party seeking to enforce
an arbitration award must resort to judicial remedies,
arbitration agreements are sometimes contained in called an action to "confirm" an award
ancillary agreements, or in small print in other
agreements, and consumers and employees often do although grounds for attacking an arbitration award in
not know in advance that they have agreed to court are limited, efforts to confirm the award can be
mandatory binding pre-dispute arbitration by fiercely fought[citation needed], thus necessitating
purchasing a product or taking a job huge legal expenses that negate the perceived
economic incentive to arbitrate the dispute in the first
if the arbitration is mandatory and binding, the parties place.
waive their rights to access the courts and to have a
judge or jury decide the case [edit] Arbitrability

in some arbitration agreements, the parties are By their nature, the subject matter of some disputes is
required to pay for the arbitrators, which adds an not capable of arbitration. In general, two groups of
additional layer of legal cost that can be prohibitive, legal procedures cannot be subjected to arbitration:
especially in small consumer disputes[citation needed]
Procedures which necessarily lead to a determination
in some arbitration agreements and systems, the which the parties to the dispute may not enter into an
recovery of attorneys' fees is unavailable, making it agreement upon:[8] Some court procedures lead to
difficult or impossible for consumers or employees to judgments which bind all members of the general
get legal representation[citation needed]; however public, or public authorities in their capacity as such, or
most arbitration codes and agreements provide for the third parties, or which are being conducted in the
same relief that could be granted in court public interest. For example, until the 1980s, antitrust
matters were not arbitrable in the United States.[9]
if the arbitrator or the arbitration forum depends on the Matters relating to crimes, status and family law are
generally not considered to be arbitrable, as the power
corporation for repeat business, there may be an
of the parties to enter into an agreement upon these
inherent incentive to rule against the consumer or
matters is at least restricted. However, most other
employee
disputes that involve private rights between two parties
can be resolved using arbitration. In some disputes,
there are very limited avenues for appeal, which parts of claims may be arbitrable and other parts not.
means that an erroneous decision cannot be easily For example, in a dispute over patent infringement, a
overturned determination of whether a patent has been infringed
could be adjudicated upon by an arbitration tribunal,
although usually thought to be speedier, when there but the validity of a patent could not: As patents are
are multiple arbitrators on the panel, juggling their subject to a system of public registration, an arbitral
schedules for hearing dates in long cases can lead to panel would have no power to order the relevant body
delays to rectify any patent registration based upon its
determination.
in some legal systems, arbitrary awards have fewer
enforcement options than judgments; although in the Some legal orders exclude or restrict the possibility of
United States arbitration awards are enforced in the arbitration for reasons of the protection of weaker
same manner as court judgments and have the same members of the public, e.g. consumers. Examples:
effect German law excludes disputes over the rental of living
space from any form of arbitration[10], while arbitration
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 40

agreements with consumers are only considered valid
if they are signed by either party,[11] and if the signed
document does not bear any other content than the Agreements to refer disputes to arbitration generally
arbitration agreement.[12] have a special status in the eyes of the law. For
example, in disputes on a contract, a common defence
Arbitration agreement is to plead the contract is void and thus any claim
based upon it fails. It follows that if a party successfully
See also: Arbitration clause claims that a contract is void, then each clause
contained within the contract, including the arbitration
In theory, arbitration is a consensual process; a party clause, would be void. However, in most countries, the
cannot be forced to arbitrate a dispute unless he courts have accepted that:
agrees to do so. In practice, however, many fine-print
arbitration agreements are inserted in situations in 1.a contract can only be declared void by a court or
which consumers and employees have no bargaining other tribunal; and
power. Moreover, arbitration clauses are frequently
placed within sealed users' manuals within products, 2.if the contract (valid or otherwise) contains an
within lengthy click-through agreements on websites, arbitration clause, then the proper forum to determine
and in other contexts in which meaningful consent is whether the contract is void or not, is the arbitration
not realistic. Such agreements are generally divided tribunal.[18]
into two types:
Arguably, either position is potentially unfair; if a
agreements which provide that, if a dispute should person is made to sign a contract under duress, and
arise, it will be resolved by arbitration. These will the contract contains an arbitration clause highly
generally be normal contracts, but they contain an favourable to the other party, the dispute may still
arbitration clause referred to that arbitration tribunal.[citation needed]
Conversely a court may be persuaded that the
agreements which are signed after a dispute has arbitration agreement itself is void having been signed
arisen, agreeing that the dispute should be resolved by under duress. However, most courts will be reluctant to
arbitration (sometimes called a "submission interfere with the general rule which does allow for
agreement") commercial expediency; any other solution (where one
first had to go to court to decide whether one had to go
The former is the far more prevalent type of arbitration to arbitration) would be self defeating.
agreement. Sometimes, legal significance attaches to
the type of arbitration agreement. For example, in Sources of law---- States regulate arbitration through a
certain Commonwealth countries, it is possible to variety of laws. The main body of law applicable to
provide that each party should bear their own costs in arbitration is normally contained either in the national
a conventional arbitration clause, but not in a Private International Law Act (as is the case in
submission agreement. Switzerland) or in a separate law on arbitration (as is
the case in England). In addition to this, a number of
national procedural laws may also contain provisions
In keeping with the informality of the arbitration
process, the law is generally keen to uphold the relating to arbitration.
validity of arbitration clauses even when they lack the
normal formal language associated with legal By far the most important international instrument on
contracts. Clauses which have been upheld include: arbitration law[citation needed] is the 1958 New York
Convention on Recognition and Enforcement of
Foreign Arbitral Awards. Some other relevant
"arbitration in London - English law to apply"[13]
international instruments are:
"suitable arbitration clause"[14]
The Geneva Protocol of 1923
"arbitration, if any, by ICC Rules in London"[15]
The Geneva Convention of 1927
The courts have also upheld clauses which specify
resolution of disputes other than in accordance with a The European Convention of 1961
specific legal system. These include provision
indicating: The Washington Convention of 1965
(governing settlement of international
that the arbitrators "must not necessarily judge investment disputes)
according to the strict law but as a general rule ought
chiefly to consider the principles of practical The UNCITRAL Model Law (providing a
business"[16] model for a national law of arbitration)

"internationally accepted principles of law governing The UNCITRAL Arbitration Rules (providing a
contractual relations"[17] set of rules for an ad hoc arbitration)
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 41

Case presentation or mini-trial Be it enacted by the Senate and House of
Representatives of the Philippines in Congress
This is where in-house representatives present brief assembled:
summaries of the parties cases to senior executives of
both parties with authority to settle the dispute, in a CHAPTER 1 - GENERAL PROVISIONS
structured information exchange. The senior
executives then negotiate a solution, taking into
SECTION 1. Title. - This act shall be known as the
account the information presented to them. Sometimes
an independent third party will chair the presentation. "Alternative Dispute Resolution Act of 2004."

Independent expert appraisal or early neutral SEC. 2. Declaration of Policy. - it is hereby declared the
evaluation policy of the State to actively promote party autonomy
in the resolution of disputes or the freedom of the
This is where the parties appoint an independent party to make their own arrangements to resolve their
expert to investigate and provide an opinion on the disputes. Towards this end, the State shall encourage
issues in dispute, either as a basis for solution or and actively promote the use of Alternative Dispute
simply to clarify the issues. In some cases, the parties Resolution (ADR) as an important means to achieve
agree to be bound by the opinion, which is often speedy and impartial justice and declog court dockets.
submitted to them in draft form before being finalised. As such, the State shall provide means for the use of
The process may then become a type of mediation on
ADR as an efficient tool and an alternative procedure
the draft opinion, putting responsibility for a solution
back into the hands of the parties. for the resolution of appropriate cases. Likewise, the
State shall enlist active private sector participation in
Litigation the settlement of disputes through ADR. This Act shall
be without prejudice to the adoption by the Supreme
This is the system in which the courts impose a binding Court of any ADR system, such as mediation,
decision on the parties. It is formal, with strict rules of conciliation, arbitration, or any combination thereof as
evidence, and adversarial. The legal framing, analysis a means of achieving speedy and efficient means of
and argument, together with the adversarial nature of resolving cases pending before all courts in the
the process, means that the system has little scope for Philippines which shall be governed by such rules as
reconciling or accommodating the parties' interests. It the Supreme Court may approve from time to time.
also produces 'winners and losers'.

SEC. 3. Definition of Terms. - For purposes of this Act,


2.4.6 5. INQUIRY AND FACT FINDING
the term:
2.4.7 6. GOOD OFFICES
(a) "Alternative Dispute Resolution System" means any
process or procedure used to resolve a dispute or
controversy, other than by adjudication of a presiding
3 DOMESTIC ARBITRATION judge of a court or an officer of a government agency,
as defined in this Act, in which a neutral third party
3.1 INTRODUCTION TO DOMESTIC participates to assist in the resolution of issues, which
includes arbitration, mediation, conciliation, early
COMMERCIAL DISPUTE
neutral evaluation, mini-trial, or any combination
RESOLUTION thereof;

(b) "ADR Provider" means institutions or persons
3.2 ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE accredited as mediator, conciliator, arbitrator, neutral
evaluator, or any person exercising similar functions in
RESOLUTION ACT OF 2004 any Alternative Dispute Resolution system. This is
without prejudice to the rights of the parties to choose
Republic Act No. 9285
nonaccredited individuals to act as mediator,
April 2, 2004 conciliator, arbitrator, or neutral evaluator of their
dispute.
AN ACT TO INSTITUTIONALIZE THE USE OF AN
ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE RESOLUTION SYSTEM IN Whenever reffered to in this Act, the term "ADR
THE PHILIPPINES AND TO ESTABLISH THE practitioners" shall refer to individuals acting as
OFFICE FOR ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE mediator, conciliator, arbitrator or neutral evaluator;
RESOLUTION, AND FOR OTHER PURPOSES
(c) "Authenticate" means to sign, execute or adopt a
symbol, or encrypt a record in whole or in part,
intended to identity the authenticating party and to
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 42

adopt, accept or establish the authenticity of a record (n) "Early Neutral Evaluation" means an ADR process
or term; wherein parties and their lawyers are brought together
early in a pre-trial phase to present summaries of their
(d) "Arbitration" means a voluntary dispute resolution cases and receive a nonbinding assessment by an
process in which one or more arbitrators, appointed in experienced, neutral person, with expertise in the
accordance with the agreement of the parties, or rules subject in the substance of the dispute;
promulgated pursuant to this Act, resolve a dispute by
rendering an award; (o) "Government Agency" means any government
entity, office or officer, other than a court, that is
(e) "Arbitrator" means the person appointed to render vested by law with quasi-judicial power to resolve or
an award, alone or with others, in a dispute that is the adjudicate dispute involving the government, its
subject of an arbitration agreement; agencies and instrumentalities, or private persons;

(f) "Award" means any partial or final decision by an


arbitrator in resolving the issue in a controversy; (p) "International Party" shall mean an entity whose
place of business is outside the Philippines. It shall not
(g) "Commercial Arbitration" An arbitration is include a domestic subsidiary of such international
"commercial if it covers matter arising from all party or a coventurer in a joint venture with a party
relationships of a commercial nature, whether which has its place of business in the Philippines.
contractual or not;
The term foreigner arbitrator shall mean a person who
(h) "Confidential information" means any information, is not a national of the Philippines.
relative to the subject of mediation or arbitration,
expressly intended by the source not to be disclosed, or (q) "Mediation" means a voluntary process in which a
obtained under circumstances that would create a mediator, selected by the disputing parties, facilitates
reasonable expectation on behalf of the source that the communication and negotiation, and assist the parties
information shall not be disclosed. It shall include (1) in reaching a voluntary agreement regarding a dispute.
communication, oral or written, made in a dispute
resolution proceedings, including any memoranda, (r) "Mediator" means a person who conducts
notes or work product of the neutral party or non-party mediation;
participant, as defined in this Act; (2) an oral or
written statement made or which occurs during (s) "Mediation Party" means a person who participates
mediation or for purposes of considering, conducting, in a mediation and whose consent is necessary to
participating, initiating, continuing of reconvening resolve the dispute;
mediation or retaining a mediator; and (3) pleadings,
motions manifestations, witness statements, reports (t) "Mediation-Arbitration" or Med-Arb is a step
filed or submitted in an arbitration or for expert dispute resolution process involving both mediation
evaluation; and arbitration;

(i) "Convention Award" means a foreign arbitral award (u) "Mini-Trial" means a structured dispute resolution
made in a Convention State; method in which the merits of a case are argued before
a panel comprising senior decision makers with or
(j) "Convention State" means a State that is a member without the presence of a neutral third person after
of the New York Convention; which the parties seek a negotiated settlement;

(k) "Court" as referred to in Article 6 of the Model Law (v) "Model Law" means the Model Law on
shall mean a Regional Trial Court; International Commercial Arbitration adopted by the
United Nations Commission on International Trade
(l) "Court-Annexed Mediation" means any mediation Law on 21 June 1985;
process conducted under the auspices of the court,
after such court has acquired jurisdiction of the (w) "New York Convention" means the United Nations
dispute; Convention on the Recognition and Enforcement of
Foreign Arbitral Awards approved in 1958 and ratified
(m) "Court-Referred Mediation" means mediation by the Philippine Senate under Senate Resolution No.
ordered by a court to be conducted in accordance with 71;
the Agreement of the Parties when as action is
prematurely commenced in violation of such (x) "Non-Convention Award" means a foreign arbitral
agreement; award made in a State which is not a Convention State;
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 43

(y) "Non-Convention State" means a State that is not a policy that the decision-making authority in the
member of the New York Convention. mediation process rests with the parties.

(z) "Non-Party Participant" means a person, other than SEC. 9. Confidentiality of Information. - Information
a party or mediator, who participates in a mediation obtained through mediation proceedings shall be
proceeding as a witness, resource person or expert; subject to the following principles and guidelines:

(aa) "Proceeding" means a judicial, administrative, or (a) Information obtained through mediation shall be
other adjudicative process, including related pre- privileged and confidential.
hearing motions, conferences and discovery;
(b) A party, a mediator, or a nonparty participant may
(bb) "Record" means an information written on a refuse to disclose and may prevent any other person
tangible medium or stored in an electronic or other from disclosing a mediation communication.
similar medium, retrievable form; and
(c) Confidential Information shall not be subject to
(cc) "Roster" means a list of persons qualified to discovery and shall be inadmissible if any adversarial
provide ADR services as neutrals or to serve as proceeding, whether judicial or quasi-judicial,
arbitrators. However, evidence or information that is otherwise
admissible or subject to discovery does not become
SEC. 4. Electronic Signatures in Global and E- inadmissible or protected from discovery solely by
Commerce Act. - The provisions of the Electronic reason of its use in a mediation.
Signatures in Global and E-Commerce Act, and its
implementing Rules and Regulations shall apply to (d) In such an adversarial proceeding, the following
proceeding contemplated in this Act. persons involved or previously involved in a mediation
may not be compelled to disclose confidential
SEC. 5. Liability of ADR Provider and Practitioner. - information obtained during mediation: (1) the parties
The ADR providers and practitioners shall have the to the dispute; (2) the mediator or mediators; (3) the
same civil liability for the Acts done in the counsel for the parties; (4) the nonparty participants;
performance of then duties as that of public officers as (5) any persons hired or engaged in connection with
provided in Section 38 (1), Chapter 9, Book of the the mediation as secretary, stenographer, clerk or
Administrative Code of 1987. assistant; and (6) any other person who obtains or
possesses confidential information by reason of
SEC. 6. Exception to the Application of this Act. - The his/her profession.
provisions of this Act shall not apply to resolution or
settlement of the following: (a) labor disputes covered (e) The protections of this Act shall continue to apply
by Presidential Decree No. 442, otherwise known as even of a mediator is found to have failed to act
the Labor Code of the Philippines, as amended and its impartially.
Implementing Rules and Regulations; (b) the civil
status of persons; (c) the validity of a marriage; (d) any (f) a mediator may not be called to testify to provide
ground for legal separation; (e) the jurisdiction of information gathered in mediation. A mediator who is
courts; (f) future legitime; (g) criminal liability; and (h) wrongfully subpoenaed shall be reimbursed the full
those which by law cannot be compromised. cost of his attorney's fees and related expenses.

CHAPTER 2 - MEDIATION SEC. 10. Waiver of Confidentiality. - A privilege arising


from the confidentiality of information may be waived
SEC. 7. Scope. - The provisions of this Chapter shall in a record, or orally during a proceeding by the
cover voluntary mediation, whether ad hoc or mediator and the mediation parties.
institutional, other than court-annexed. The term
"mediation' shall include conciliation. A privilege arising from the confidentiality of
information may likewise be waived by a nonparty
SEC. 8. Application and Interpretation. - In applying participant if the information is provided by such
construing the provisions of this Chapter, nonparty participant.
consideration must be given to the need to promote
candor or parties and mediators through A person who discloses confidential information shall
confidentiality of the mediation process, the policy of be precluded from asserting the privilege under
fostering prompt, economical, and amicable resolution Section 9 of this Chapter to bar disclosure of the rest of
of disputes in accordance with the principles of the information necessary to a complete understanding
integrity of determination by the parties, and the of the previously disclosed information. If a person
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 44

suffers loss or damages in a judicial proceeding against (2) a proceeding to prove a claim or defense that under
the person who made the disclosure. the law is sufficient to reform or avoid a liability on a
contract arising out of the mediation.
A person who discloses or makes a representation
about a mediation is preclude from asserting the (c) A mediator may not be compelled to provide
privilege under Section 9, to the extent that the evidence of a mediation communication or testify in
communication prejudices another person in the such proceeding.
proceeding and it is necessary for the person
prejudiced to respond to the representation of (d) If a mediation communication is not privileged
disclosure. under an exception in subsection (a) or (b), only the
portion of the communication necessary for the
SEC. 11. Exceptions to Privilege. - application of the exception for nondisclosure may be
admitted. The admission of particular evidence for the
(a) There is no privilege against disclosure under limited purpose of an exception does not render that
Section 9 if mediation communication is: evidence, or any other mediation communication,
admissible for any other purpose.
(1) in an agreement evidenced by a record
authenticated by all parties to the agreement; SEC. 12. Prohibited Mediator Reports. - A mediator
may not make a report, assessment, evaluation,
(2) available to the public or that is made during a recommendation, finding, or other communication
session of a mediation which is open, or is required by regarding a mediation to a court or agency or other
law to be open, to the public; authority that make a ruling on a dispute that is the
subject of a mediation, except:
(3) a threat or statement of a plan to inflict bodily
injury or commit a crime of violence; (a) Where the mediation occurred or has terminated,
or where a settlement was reached.
(4) internationally used to plan a crime, attempt to
commit, or commit a crime, or conceal an ongoing (b) As permitted to be disclosed under Section 13 of
crime or criminal activity; this Chapter.

(5) sought or offered to prove or disprove abuse, SEC. 13. Mediator's Disclosure and Conflict of Interest.
neglect, abandonment, or exploitation in a proceeding - The mediation shall be guided by the following
in which a public agency is protecting the interest of an operative principles:
individual protected by law; but this exception does
not apply where a child protection matter is referred to (a) Before accepting a mediation, an individual who is
mediation by a court or a public agency participates in requested to serve as a mediator shall:
the child protection mediation;
(1) make an inquiry that is reasonable under the
(6) sought or offered to prove or disprove a claim or circumstances to determinate whether there are any
complaint of professional misconduct or malpractice known facts that a reasonable individual would
filed against mediator in a proceeding; or consider likely to affect the impartiality of the
mediator, including a financial or personal interest in
(7) sought or offered to prove or disprove a claim of the outcome of the mediation and any existing or past
complaint of professional misconduct of malpractice relationship with a party or foreseeable participant in
filed against a party, nonparty participant, or the mediation; and
representative of a party based on conduct occurring
during a mediation. (2) disclosure to the mediation parties any such fact
known or learned as soon as is practical before
(b) There is no privilege under Section 9 if a court or accepting a mediation.
administrative agency, finds, after a hearing in camera,
that the party seeking discovery of the proponent of (b) If a mediation learns any fact described in
the evidence has shown that the evidence is not paragraph (a) (1) of this section after accepting a
otherwise available, that there is a need for the mediation, the mediator shall disclose it as soon as
evidence that substantially outweighs the interest in practicable.
protecting confidentiality, and the mediation
communication is sought or offered in: At the request of a mediation party, an individual who
is requested to serve as mediator shall disclose his/her
(1) a court proceeding involving a crime or felony; or qualifications to mediate a dispute.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 45

This Act does not require that a mediator shall have parties resides. Where there is a need to enforce the
special qualifications by background or profession settlement agreement, a petition may be filed by any of
unless the special qualifications of a mediator are the parties with the same court, in which case, the
required in the mediation agreement or by the court shall proceed summarily to hear the petition, in
mediation parties. accordance with such rules of procedure as may be
promulgated by the Supreme Court.
SEC. 14. Participation in Mediation. - Except as
otherwise provided in this Act, a party may designate a (d) The parties may agree in the settlement agreement
lawyer or any other person to provide assistance in the that the mediator shall become a sole arbitrator for the
mediation. A lawyer of this right shall be made in dispute and shall treat the settlement agreement as an
writing by the party waiving it. A waiver of arbitral award which shall be subject to enforcement
participation or legal representation may be rescinded under Republic Act No. 876, otherwise known as the
at any time. Arbitration Law, notwithstanding the provisions of
Executive Order No. 1008 for mediated dispute outside
SEC. 15. Place of Mediation. - The parties are free to of the CIAC.
agree on the place of mediation. Failing such
agreement, the place of mediation shall be any place CHAPTER 3 - OTHER ADR FORMS
convenient and appropriate to all parties.
SEC. 18. Referral of Dispute to other ADR Forms. - The
SEC. 16. Effect of Agreement to Submit Dispute to parties may agree to refer one or more or all issues
Mediation Under Institutional Rules. - An agreement arising in a dispute or during its pendency to other
to submit a dispute to mediation by any institution forms of ADR such as but not limited to (a) the
shall include an agreement to be bound by the internal evaluation of a third person or (b) a mini-trial, (c)
mediation and administrative policies of such mediation-arbitration, or a combination thereof.
institution. Further, an agreement to submit a dispute
to mediation under international mediation rule shall For purposes of this Act, the use of other ADR forms
be deemed to include an agreement to have such rules shall be governed by Chapter 2 of this Act except where
govern the mediation of the dispute and for the it is combined with arbitration in which case it shall
mediator, the parties, their respective counsel, and likewise be governed by Chapter 5 of this Act.
nonparty participants to abide by such rules.
CHAPTER 4 - INTERNATIONAL COMMERCIAL
In case of conflict between the institutional mediation ARBITRATION
rules and the provisions of this Act, the latter shall
prevail. SEC. 19. Adoption of the Model Law on International
Commercial Arbitration. - International commercial
SEC. 17. Enforcement of Mediated Settlement arbitration shall be governed by the Model Law on
Agreement. - The mediation shall be guided by the International Commercial Arbitration (the "Model
following operative principles: Law") adopted by the United Nations Commission on
International Trade Law on June 21, 1985 (United
(a) A settlement agreement following successful Nations Document A/40/17) and recommended
mediation shall be prepared by the parties with the approved on December 11, 1985, copy of which is
assistance of their respective counsel, if any, and by the hereto attached as Appendix "A".
mediator.
SEC. 20. Interpretation of Model Law. - In interpreting
The parties and their respective counsels shall the Model Law, regard shall be had to its international
endeavor to make the terms and condition thereof origin and to the need for uniformity in its
complete and make adequate provisions for the interpretation and resort may be made to the travaux
contingency of breach to avoid conflicting preparatories and the report of the Secretary General
interpretations of the agreement. of the United Nations Commission on International
Trade Law dated March 25, 1985 entitled,
(b) The parties and their respective counsels, if any, "International Commercial Arbitration: Analytical
shall sign the settlement agreement. The mediator Commentary on Draft Trade identified by reference
shall certify that he/she explained the contents of the number A/CN. 9/264."
settlement agreement to the parties in a language
known to them. SEC. 21. Commercial Arbitration. - An arbitration is
"commercial" if it covers matters arising from all
(c) If the parties so desire, they may deposit such relationships of a commercial nature, whether
settlement agreement with the appropriate Clerk of a contractual or not. Relationships of a transactions: any
Regional Trial Court of the place where one of the trade transaction for the supply or exchange of goods
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 46

or services; distribution agreements; construction of agreed to a different procedure, they shall be deemed
works; commercial representation or agency; to have agreed to procedure under such arbitration
factoring; leasing, consulting; engineering; licensing; rules for the selection and appointment of arbitrators.
investment; financing; banking; insurance; joint In ad hoc arbitration, the default appointment of an
venture and other forms of industrial or business arbitrator shall be made by the National President of
cooperation; carriage of goods or passengers by air, the Integrated Bar of the Philippines (IBP) or his duly
sea, rail or road. authorized representative.

SEC. 22. Legal Representation in International SEC. 27. What Functions May be Performed by
Arbitration. - In international arbitration conducted in Appointing Authority. - The functions referred to in
the Philippines, a party may be presented by any Articles 11(3), 11(4), 13(3) and 14(1) of the Model Law
person of his choice. Provided, that such shall be performed by the Appointing Authority, unless
representative, unless admitted to the practice of law the latter shall fail or refuse to act within thirty (30)
in the Philippines, shall not be authorized to appear as days from receipt of the request in which case the
counsel in any Philippine court, or any other quasi- applicant may renew the application with the Court.
judicial body whether or not such appearance is in
relation to the arbitration in which he appears. SEC. 28. Grant of Interim Measure of Protection. -

SEC. 23. Confidential of Arbitration Proceedings. - The (a) It is not incompatible with an arbitration
arbitration proceedings, including the records, agreement for a party to request, before constitution of
evidence and the arbitral award, shall be considered the tribunal, from a Court an interim measure of
confidential and shall not be published except (1) with protection and for the Court to grant such measure.
the consent of the parties, or (2) for the limited After constitution of the arbitral tribunal and during
purpose of disclosing to the court of relevant arbitral proceedings, a request for an interim measure
documents in cases where resort to the court is allowed of protection or modification thereof, may be made
herein. Provided, however, that the court in which the with the arbitral tribunal or to the extent that the
action or the appeal is pending may issue a protective arbitral tribunal has no power to act or is unable to act
order to prevent or prohibit disclosure of documents or effectively, the request may be made with the Court.
information containing secret processes, The arbitral tribunal is deemed constituted when the
developments, research and other information where it sole arbitrator or the third arbitrator who has been
is shown that the applicant shall be materially nominated, has accepted the nomination and written
prejudiced by an authorized disclosure thereof. communication of said nomination and acceptance has
been received by the party making request.
SEC. 24. Referral to Arbitration. - A court before which
an action is brought in a matter which is the subject (b) The following rules on interim or provisional relief
matter of an arbitration agreement shall, if at least one shall be observed:
party so requests not later that the pre-trial
conference, or upon the request of both parties (1) Any party may request that provision relief be
thereafter, refer the parties to arbitration unless it granted against the adverse party:
finds that the arbitration agreement is null and void,
inoperative or incapable of being performed. (2) Such relief may be granted:

SEC. 25. Interpretation of the Act. - In interpreting the (i) to prevent irreparable loss or injury:
Act, the court shall have due regard to the policy of the
law in favor of arbitration. Where action is commenced (ii) to provide security for the performance of any
by or against multiple parties, one or more of whom obligation;
are parties who are bound by the arbitration
agreement although the civil action may continue as to (iii) to produce or preserve any evidence; or
those who are not bound by such arbitration
agreement. (iv) to compel any other appropriate act or omission.

SEC. 26. Meaning of "Appointing Authority.". - (3) The order granting provisional relief may be
"Appointing Authority" as used in the Model Law shall conditioned upon the provision of security or any act
mean the person or institution named in the or omission specified in the order.
arbitration agreement as the appointing authority; or
the regular arbitration arbitration institution under (4) Interim or provisional relief is requested by written
whose rules the arbitration is agreed to be conducted. application transmitted by reasonable means to the
Where the parties have agreed to submit their dispute Court or arbitral tribunal as the case may be and the
to institutional arbitration rules, and unless they have party against whom the relief is sought, describing in
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 47

appropriate detail the precise relief, the party against The arbitral tribunal may order that any documentary
whom the relief is requested, the grounds for the relief, evidence shall be accompanied by a translation into the
and evidence supporting the request. language or languages agreed upon by the parties or
determined in accordance with paragraph 1 of this
(5) The order shall be binding upon the parties. section.

(6) Either party may apply with the Court for CHAPTER 5 - DOMESTIC ARBITRATION
assistance in Implementing or enforcing an interim
measure ordered by an arbitral tribunal. SEC. 32. Law Governing Domestic Arbitration. -
Domestic arbitration shall continue to be governed by
(7) A party who does not comply with the order shall Republic Act No. 876, otherwise known as "The
be liable for all damages resulting from Arbitration Law" as amended by this Chapter. The
noncompliance, including all expenses, and reasonable term "domestic arbitration" as used herein shall mean
attorney's fees, paid in obtaining the order's judicial an arbitration that is not international as defined in
enforcement. Article (3) of the Model Law.

SEC. 29. Further Authority for Arbitrator to Grant SEC. 33. Applicability to Domestic Arbitration. -
Interim Measure of Protection. - Unless otherwise Article 8, 10, 11, 12, 13, 14, 18 and 19 and 29 to 32 of
agreed by the parties, the arbitral tribunal may, at the the Model Law and Section 22 to 31 of the preceding
request of a party, order any party to take such interim Chapter 4 shall apply to domestic arbitration.
measures of protection as the arbitral tribunal may
consider necessary in respect of the subject matter of CHAPTER 6 - ARBITRATION OF CONSTRUCTION
the dispute following the rules in Section 28, DISPUTES
paragraph 2. Such interim measures may include but
shall not be limited to preliminary injuction directed SEC. 34. Arbitration of Construction Disputes:
against a party, appointment of receivers or detention, Governing Law. - The arbitration of construction
preservation, inspection of property that is the subject disputes shall be governed by Executive Order No.
of the dispute in arbitration. Either party may apply 1008, otherwise known as the Constitution Industry
with the Court for assistance in implementing or Arbitration Law.
enforcing an interim measures ordered by an arbitral
tribunal. SEC. 35. Coverage of the Law. - Construction disputes
which fall within the original and exclusive jurisdiction
SEC. 30. Place of Arbitration. - The parties are free to of the Construction Industry Arbitration Commission
agree on the place of arbitration. Failing such (the "Commission") shall include those between or
agreement, the place of arbitration shall be in Metro among parties to, or who are otherwise bound by, an
Manila, unless the arbitral tribunal, having regard to arbitration agreement, directly or by reference whether
the circumstances of the case, including the such parties are project owner, contractor,
convenience of the parties shall decide on a different subcontractor, quantity surveyor, bondsman or issuer
place of arbitration. of an insurance policy in a construction project.

The arbitral tribunal may, unless otherwise agreed by The Commission shall continue to exercise original
the parties, meet at any place it considers appropriate and exclusive jurisdiction over construction disputes
for consultation among its members, for hearing although the arbitration is "commercial" pursuant to
witnesses, experts, or the parties, or for inspection of Section 21 of this Act.
goods, other property or documents.
SEC. 36. Authority to Act as Mediator or Arbitrator. -
SEC. 31. Language of the Arbitration. - The parties are By written agreement of the parties to a dispute, an
free to agree on the language or languages to be used in arbitrator may act as mediator and a mediator may act
the arbitral proceedings. Failing such agreement, the as arbitrator. The parties may also agree in writing
language to be used shall be English in international that, following a successful mediation, the mediator
arbitration, and English or Filipino for domestic shall issue the settlement agreement in the form of an
arbitration, unless the arbitral tribunal shall determine arbitral award.
a different or another language or languages to be used
in the proceedings. This agreement or determination, SEC. 37. Appointment of Foreign Arbitrator. - The
unless otherwise specified therein, shall apply to any Construction Industry Arbitration Commission (CIAC)
written statement by a party, any hearing and any shall promulgate rules to allow for the appointment of
award, decision or other communication by the a foreign arbitrator or coarbitrator or chairman of a
arbitral tribunal. tribunal a person who has not been previously
accredited by CIAC: Provided, That:
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 48

against a domestic arbitral award shall be disregarded
(a) the dispute is a construction dispute in which one by the regional trial court.
party is an international party
B. FOREIGN ARBITRAL AWARDS
(b) the person to be appointed agreed to abide by the
arbitration rules and policies of CIAC; SEC. 42. Application of the New York Convention. -
The New York Convention shall govern the recognition
(c) he/she is either coarbitrator upon the nomination and enforcement of arbitral awards covered by the said
of the international party; or he/she is the common Convention.
choice of the two CIAC-accredited arbitrators first
appointed one of whom was nominated by the The recognition and enforcement of such arbitral
international party; and awards shall be filled with regional trial court in
accordance with the rules of procedure to be
(d) the foreign arbitrator shall be of different promulgated by the Supreme Court. Said procedural
nationality from the international party. rules shall provide that the party relying on the award
or applying for its enforcement shall file with the court
SEC. 38. Applicability to Construction Arbitration. - the original or authenticated copy of the award and the
The provisions of Sections 17 (d) of Chapter 2, and arbitration agreement. If the award or agreement is
Section 28 and 29 of this Act shall apply to arbitration not made in any of the official languages, the party
of construction disputes covered by this Chapter. shall supply a duly certified translation thereof into
any of such languages.
SEC. 39. Court to Dismiss Case Involving a
Construction Dispute. - A regional trial court which a The applicant shall establish that the country in which
construction dispute is filed shall, upon becoming foreign arbitration award was made is a party to the
aware, not later than the pretrial conference, that the New York Convention.
parties had entered into an arbitration to be conducted
by the CIAC, unless both parties, assisted by their If the application for rejection or suspension of
respective counsel, shall submit to the regional trial enforcement of an award has been made, the regional
court a written agreement exclusive for the Court, trial court may, if it considers it proper, vacate its
rather than the CIAC, to resolve the dispute. decision and may also, on the application of the party
claiming recognition or enforcement of the award,
CHAPTER 7 - JUDICIAL REVIEW OF ARBITRAL order the party to provide appropriate security.
AWARDS
SEC. 43. Recognition and Enforcement of Foreign
A. DOMESTIC AWARDS Arbitral Awards Not Covered by the New York
Convention. - The recognition and enforcement of
SEC. 40. Confirmation of Award. - The confirmation of foreign arbitral awards not covered by the New York
a domestic arbitral award shall be governed by Section Convention shall be done in accordance with
23 of R.A. 876. procedural rules to be promulgated by the Supreme
Court. The Court may, grounds of comity and
A domestic arbitral award when confirmed shall be reciprocity, recognize and enforce a nonconvention
enforced in the same manner as final and executory award as a convention award.
decisions of the Regional Trial Court.
SEC. 44. Foreign Arbitral Award Not Foreign
The confirmation of a domestic award shall be made by Judgment. - A foreign arbitral award when confirmed
the regional trial court in accordance with the Rules of by a court of a foreign country, shall be recognized and
Procedure to be promulgated by the Supreme Court. enforced as a foreign arbitral award and not a
judgment of a foreign court.
A CIAC arbitral award need not be confirmed by the
regional trial court to be executory as provided under A foreign arbitral award, when confirmed by the
E.O. No. 1008. regional trial court, shall be enforced as a foreign
arbitral award and not as a judgment of a foreign
SEC. 41. Vacation Award. - A party to a domestic court.
arbitration may question the arbitral award with the
appropriate regional trial court in accordance with the A foreign arbitral award, when confirmed by the
rules of procedure to be promulgated by the Supreme regional trial court, shall be enforced in the same
Court only on those grounds enumerated in Section 25 manner as final and executory decisions of courts of
of Republic Act No. 876. Any other ground raised law of the Philippines.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 49

SEC. 45. Rejection of a Foreign Arbitral Award. - A (a) to promote, develop and expand the use of ADR in
party to a foreign arbitration proceeding may oppose the private and public sectors; and
an application for recognition and enforcement of the
arbitral award in accordance with the procedural rules To assist the government to monitor, study and
to be promulgated by the Supreme Court only on those evaluate the use by the public and the private sector of
grounds enumerated under Article V of the New York ADR, and recommend to Congress needful statutory
Convention. Any other ground raised shall be changes to develop. Strengthen and improve ADR
disregarded by the regional trial court. practices in accordance with world standards.

SEC. 46. Appeal from Court Decisions on Arbitral SEC. 50. Powers and Functions of the Office for
Awards. - A decision of the regional trial court Alternative Dispute Resolution. - The Office for
confirming, vacating, setting aside, modifying or Alternative Dispute Resolution shall have the following
correcting an arbitral award may be appealed to the powers and functions:
Court of Appeals in accordance with the rules of
procedure to be promulgated by the Supreme Court. (a) To formulate standards for the training of the ADR
practitioners and service providers;
The losing party who appeals from the judgment of the
court confirming an arbitral award shall required by (b) To certify that such ADR practitioners and ADR
the appealant court to post counterbond executed in service providers have undergone the professional
favor of the prevailing party equal to the amount of the training provided by the office;
award in accordance with the rules to be promulgated
by the Supreme Court. (c) To coordinate the development, implementation,
monitoring, and evaluation of government ADR
SEC. 47. Venue and Jurisdiction. - Proceedings for programs;
recognition and enforcement of an arbitration
agreement or for vacation, setting aside, correction or (d) To charge fees for their services; and
modification of an arbitral award, and any application
with a court for arbitration assistance and supervision (e) To perform such acts as may be necessary to carry
shall be deemed as special proceedings and shall be into effect the provisions of this Act.
filled with the regional trial court (i) where arbitration
proceedings are conducted; (ii) where the asset to be SEC. 51. Appropriations. - The amount necessary to
attached or levied upon, or the act to be enjoined is carry out the provisions of this Act shall be included in
located; (iii) where any of the parties to the dispute the General Appropriations Act of the year following
resides or has his place of business; or (iv) in the its enactment into law and thereafter.
National Judicial Capital Region, at the option of the
applicant. SEC. 52. Implementing Rules and Regulations (IRR). -
Within one (1) month after the approval of this Act, the
SEC. 48. Notice of Proceeding to Parties. - In a special secretary of justice shall convene a committee that
proceeding for recognition and enforcement of an shall formulate the appropriate rules and regulations
arbitral award, the Court shall send notice to the necessary for the implementation of this Act. The
parties at their address of record in the arbitration, or committee, composed of representatives from:
if any party cannot be served notice at such address, at
such party's last known address. The notice shall be (a) the Department of Justice;
sent at least fifteen (15) days before the date set for the
initial hearing of the application. (b) the Department of Trade and Industry;

CHAPTER 8 - MISCELLANEOUS PROVISIONS (c) the Department of the Interior and Local
Government;
SEC. 49. Office for Alternative Dispute Resolution. -
There is hereby established the Office for Alternative (d) the president of the Integrated Bar of the
Dispute Resolution as an attached agency to the Philippines;
Department of Justice (DOJ) which shall have a
Secretariat to be headed by an executive director. The (e) A representative from the arbitration profession;
executive director shall be appointed by the President and
of the Philippines.
(f) A representative from the mediation profession;
The objective of the office are: and

(g) A representative from the ADR organizations


ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 50

settle by arbitration a controversy thereafter arising
shall within three (3) months after convening, submit between them. Such submission or contract shall be
the IRR to the Joint Congressional Oversight valid, enforceable and irrevocable, save upon such
Committee for review and approval. The Oversight grounds as exist at law for the revocation of any
Committee shall be composed of the chairman of the contract.
Senate Committee on Justice and Human Rights,
chairman of the House Committee on Justice, and one Such submission or contract may include question
(1) member each from the majority and minority of arising out of valuations, appraisals or other
both Houses. controversies which may be collateral, incidental,
precedent or subsequent to any issue between the
The Joint Oversight Committee shall become functus parties.
officio upon approval of the IRR.
A controversy cannot be arbitrated where one of the
SEC. 53. Applicability of the Katarungan parties to the controversy is an infant, or a person
Pambarangay. - This Act shall not be interpreted to judicially declared to be incompetent, unless the
repeal, amend or modify the jurisdiction of the appropriate court having jurisdiction approve a
Katarungan Pambarangay under Republic Act No. petition for permission to submit such controversy to
7160, otherwise known as the Local Government Code arbitration made by the general guardian or guardian
of 1991. ad litem of the infant or of the incompetent.

SEC. 54. Repealing Clause. - All laws, decrees, But where a person capable of entering into a
executive orders, rules and regulations which are submission or contract has knowingly entered into the
inconsistent with the provisions of this Act are hereby same with a person incapable of so doing, the objection
repealed, amended or modified accordingly. on the ground of incapacity can be taken only in behalf
of the person so incapacitated.
SEC. 55. Separability Clause. - If for any reason or
reasons, any portion or provision of this Act shall be Section 3. Controversies or cases not subject to the
held unconstitutional or invalid, all other parts or provisions of this Act. - This Act shall not apply to
provisions not affected shall thereby continue to controversies and to cases which are subject to the
remain in full force and effect. jurisdiction of the Court of Industrial Relations or
which have been submitted to it as provided by
SEC. 56. Effectivity. - This act shall take effect fifteen Commonwealth Act Numbered One hundred and
days (15) after its publication in at least two (2) three, as amended.
national newspapers of general circulation.

Section 4. Form of arbitration agreement. - A contract


to arbitrate a controversy thereafter arising between
the parties, as well as a submission to arbitrate an
existing controversy shall be in writing and subscribed
3.3 REPUBLIC ACT NO. 876 by the party sought to be charged, or by his lawful
ARBITRATION LAW OF THE agent.
PHILIPPINES
The making of a contract or submission for arbitration
AN ACT TO AUTHORIZE THE MAKING OF described in section two hereof, providing for
ARBITRATION AND SUBMISSION AGREEMENTS, arbitration of any controversy, shall be deemed a
TO PROVIDE FOR THE APPOINTMENT OF consent of the parties to the jurisdiction of the Court of
ARBITRATORS AND THE PROCEDURE FOR First Instance of the province or city where any of the
ARBITRATION IN CIVIL CONTROVERSIES, AND parties resides, to enforce such contract or submission.
FOR OTHER PURPOSES
Section 5. Preliminary procedure. - An arbitration shall
Section 1. Short Title. - This Act shall be known as "The be instituted by:
Arbitration Law."
(a) In the case of a contract to arbitrate future
Section 2. Persons and matters subject to arbitration. - controversies by the service by either party upon the
Two or more persons or parties may submit to the other of a demand for arbitration in accordance with
arbitration of one or more arbitrators any controversy the contract. Such demand shall be set forth the nature
existing between them at the time of the submission of the controversy, the amount involved, if any, and the
and which may be the subject of an action, or the relief sought, together with a true copy of the contract
parties to any contract may in such contract agree to providing for arbitration. The demand shall be served
upon any party either in person or by registered mail.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 51

In the event that the contract between the parties finding be that a written provision for arbitration was
provides for the appointment of a single arbitrator, the made and there is a default in proceeding thereunder,
demand shall be set forth a specific time within which an order shall be made summarily directing the parties
the parties shall agree upon such arbitrator. If the to proceed with the arbitration in accordance with the
contract between the parties provides for the terms thereof.
appointment of three arbitrators, one to be selected by
each party, the demand shall name the arbitrator The court shall decide all motions, petitions or
appointed by the party making the demand; and shall applications filed under the provisions of this Act,
require that the party upon whom the demand is made within ten days after such motions, petitions, or
shall within fifteen days after receipt thereof advise in applications have been heard by it.
writing the party making such demand of the name of
the person appointed by the second party; such notice Section 7. Stay of civil action. - If any suit or
shall require that the two arbitrators so appointed proceeding be brought upon an issue arising out of an
must agree upon the third arbitrator within ten days agreement providing for the arbitration thereof, the
from the date of such notice. court in which such suit or proceeding is pending,
upon being satisfied that the issue involved in such suit
(b) In the event that one party defaults in answering or proceeding is referable to arbitration, shall stay the
the demand, the aggrieved party may file with the action or proceeding until an arbitration has been had
Clerk of the Court of First Instance having jurisdiction in accordance with the terms of the agreement:
over the parties, a copy of the demand for arbitration Provided, That the applicant, for the stay is not in
under the contract to arbitrate, with a notice that the default in proceeding with such arbitration.
original demand was sent by registered mail or
delivered in person to the party against whom the Section 8. Appointment of arbitrators. - If, in the
claim is asserted. Such demand shall set forth the contract for arbitration or in the submission described
nature of the controversy, the amount involved, if any, in section two, provision is made for a method of
and the relief sought, and shall be accompanied by a naming or appointing an arbitrator or arbitrators, such
true copy of the contract providing for arbitration. method shall be followed; but if no method be
provided therein the Court of First Instance shall
(c) In the case of the submission of an existing designate an arbitrator or arbitrators.
controversy by the filing with the Clerk of the Court of
First Instance having jurisdiction, of the submission The Court of First Instance shall appoint an arbitrator
agreement, setting forth the nature of the controversy, or arbitrators, as the case may be, in the following
and the amount involved, if any. Such submission may instances:
be filed by any party and shall be duly executed by both
parties. (a) If the parties to the contract or submission are
unable to agree upon a single arbitrator; or
(d) In the event that one party neglects, fails or refuses
to arbitrate under a submission agreement, the (b) If an arbitrator appointed by the parties is
aggrieved party shall follow the procedure prescribed unwilling or unable to serve, and his successor has not
in subparagraphs (a) and (b) of this section. been appointed in the manner in which he was
appointed; or
Section 6. Hearing by court. - A party aggrieved by the
failure, neglect or refusal of another to perform under (c) If either party to the contract fails or refuses to
an agreement in writing providing for arbitration may name his arbitrator within fifteen days after receipt of
petition the court for an order directing that such the demand for arbitration; or
arbitration proceed in the manner provided for in such
agreement. Five days notice in writing of the hearing of (d) If the arbitrators appointed by each party to the
such application shall be served either personally or by contract, or appointed by one party to the contract and
registered mail upon the party in default. The court by the proper Court, shall fail to agree upon or to select
shall hear the parties, and upon being satisfied that the the third arbitrator.
making of the agreement or such failure to comply
therewith is not in issue, shall make an order directing (e) The court shall, in its discretion appoint one or
the parties to proceed to arbitration in accordance with three arbitrators, according to the importance of the
the terms of the agreement. If the making of the controversy involved in any of the preceding cases in
agreement or default be in issue the court shall which the agreement is silent as to the number of
proceed to summarily hear such issue. If the finding be arbitrators.
that no agreement in writing providing for arbitration
was made, or that there is no default in the proceeding (f) Arbitrators appointed under this section shall either
thereunder, the proceeding shall be dismissed. If the accept or decline their appointments within seven days
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 52

of the receipt of their appointments. In case of arbitrator, or, any of them, if there be more than one,
declination or the failure of an arbitrator or arbitrators resides. While the challenging incident is discussed
to duly accept their appointments the parties or the before the court, the hearing or arbitration shall be
court, as the case may be, shall proceed to appoint a suspended, and it shall be continued immediately after
substitute or substitutes for the arbitrator or the court has delivered an order on the challenging
arbitrators who decline or failed to accept his or their incident.
appointments.
Section 12. Procedure by arbitrators. - Subject to the
Section 9. Appointment of additional arbitrators. - terms of the submission or contract, if any are
Where a submission or contract provides that two or specified therein, are arbitrators selected as prescribed
more arbitrators therein designated or to be thereafter herein must, within five days after appointment if the
appointed by the parties, may select or appoint a parties to the controversy reside within the same city
person as an additional arbitrator, the selection or or province, or within fifteen days after appointment if
appointment must be in writing. Such additional the parties reside in different provinces, set a time and
arbitrator must sit with the original arbitrators upon place for the hearing of the matters submitted to them,
the hearing. and must cause notice thereof to be given to each of the
parties. The hearing can be postponed or adjourned by
Section 10. Qualifications of arbitrators. - Any person the arbitrators only by agreement of the parties;
appointed to serve as an arbitrator must be of legal otherwise, adjournment may be ordered by the
age, in full-enjoyment of his civil rights and know how arbitrators upon their own motion only at the hearing
to read and write. No person appointed to served as an and for good and sufficient cause. No adjournment
arbitrator shall be related by blood or marriage within shall extend the hearing beyond the day fixed in the
the sixth degree to either party to the controversy. No submission or contract for rendering the award, unless
person shall serve as an arbitrator in any proceeding if the time so fixed is extended by the written agreement
he has or has had financial, fiduciary or other interest of the parties to the submission or contract or their
in the controversy or cause to be decided or in the attorneys, or unless the parties have continued with
result of the proceeding, or has any personal bias, the arbitration without objection to such adjournment.
which might prejudice the right of any party to a fair
and impartial award. The hearing may proceed in the absence of any party
who, after due notice, fails to be present at such
No party shall select as an arbitrator any person to act hearing or fails to obtain an adjournment thereof. An
as his champion or to advocate his cause. award shall not be made solely on the default of a
party. The arbitrators shall require the other party to
If, after appointment but before or during hearing, a submit such evidence as they may require for making
person appointed to serve as an arbitrator shall an award.
discover any circumstances likely to create a
presumption of bias, or which he believes might No one other than a party to said arbitration, or a
disqualify him as an impartial arbitrator, the arbitrator person in the regular employ of such party duly
shall immediately disclose such information to the authorized in writing by said party, or a practicing
parties. Thereafter the parties may agree in writing: attorney-at-law, shall be permitted by the arbitrators
to represent before him or them any party to the
(a) to waive the presumptive disqualifying arbitration. Any party desiring to be represented by
circumstances; or counsel shall notify the other party or parties of such
intention at least five days prior to the hearing.
(b) to declare the office of such arbitrator vacant. Any
such vacancy shall be filled in the same manner as the The arbitrators shall arrange for the taking of a
original appointment was made. stenographic record of the testimony when such a
record is requested by one or more parties, and when
Section 11. Challenge of arbitrators. - The arbitrators payment of the cost thereof is assumed by such party
may be challenged only for the reasons mentioned in or parties.
the preceding section which may have arisen after the
arbitration agreement or were unknown at the time of Persons having a direct interest in the controversy
arbitration. which is the subject of arbitration shall have the right
to attend any hearing; but the attendance of any other
The challenge shall be made before them. person shall be at the discretion of the arbitrators.

If they do not yield to the challenge, the challenging Section 13. Oath of arbitrators. - Before hearing any
party may renew the challenge before the Court of First testimony, arbitrators must be sworn, by any officer
Instance of the province or city in which the challenged authorized by law to administer an oath, faithfully and
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 53

fairly to hear and examine the matters in controversy unless the parties have signified an intention to file
and to make a just award according to the best of their briefs. Then the hearing shall be closed by the
ability and understanding. Arbitrators shall have the arbitrations after the receipt of briefs and/or reply
power to administer the oaths to all witnesses briefs. Definite time limit for the filing of such briefs
requiring them to tell the whole truth and nothing but must be fixed by the arbitrators at the close of the
the truth in any testimony which they may give in any hearing. Briefs may filed by the parties within fifteen
arbitration hearing. This oath shall be required of days after the close of the oral hearings; the reply
every witness before any of his testimony is heard. briefs, if any, shall be filed within five days following
such fifteen-day period.
Section 14. Subpoena and subpoena duces tecum. -
Arbitrators shall have the power to require any person Section 17. Reopening of hearing. - The hearing may be
to attend a hearing as a witness. They shall have the reopened by the arbitrators on their own motion or
power to subpoena witnesses and documents when the upon the request of any party, upon good cause, shown
relevancy of the testimony and the materiality thereof at any time before the award is rendered. When
has been demonstrated to the arbitrators. Arbitrators hearings are thus reopened the effective date for the
may also require the retirement of any witness during closing of the hearings shall be the date of the closing
the testimony of any other witness. All of the of the reopened hearing.
arbitrators appointed in any controversy must attend
all the hearings in that matter and hear all the Section 18. Proceeding in lieu of hearing. - The parties
allegations and proofs of the parties; but an award by to a submission or contract to arbitrate may, by written
the majority of them is valid unless the concurrence of agreement, submit their dispute to arbitration by other
all of them is expressly required in the submission or than oral hearing. The parties may submit an agreed
contract to arbitrate. The arbitrator or arbitrators shall statement of facts. They may also submit their
have the power at any time, before rendering the respective contentions to the duly appointed
award, without prejudice to the rights of any party to arbitrators in writing; this shall include a statement of
petition the court to take measures to safeguard facts, together with all documentary proof. Parties may
and/or conserve any matter which is the subject of the also submit a written argument. Each party shall
dispute in arbitration. provide all other parties to the dispute with a copy of
all statements and documents submitted to the
Section 15. Hearing by arbitrators. - Arbitrators may, arbitrators. Each party shall have an opportunity to
at the commencement of the hearing, ask both parties reply in writing to any other party's statements and
for brief statements of the issues in controversy and/or proofs; but if such party fails to do so within seven
an agreed statement of facts. Thereafter the parties days after receipt of such statements and proofs, he
may offer such evidence as they desire, and shall shall be deemed to have waived his right to reply. Upon
produce such additional evidence as the arbitrators the delivery to the arbitrators of all statements and
shall require or deem necessary to an understanding documents, together with any reply statements, the
and determination of the dispute. The arbitrators shall arbitrators shall declare the proceedings in lieu of
be the sole judge of the relevancy and materiality of the hearing closed.
evidence offered or produced, and shall not be bound
to conform to the Rules of Court pertaining to Section 19. Time for rendering award. - Unless the
evidence. Arbitrators shall receive as exhibits in parties shall have stipulated by written agreement the
evidence any document which the parties may wish to time within which the arbitrators must render their
submit and the exhibits shall be properly identified at award, the written award of the arbitrators shall be
the time of submission. All exhibits shall remain in the rendered within thirty days after the closing of the
custody of the Clerk of Court during the course of the hearings or if the oral hearings shall have been waived,
arbitration and shall be returned to the parties at the within thirty days after the arbitrators shall have
time the award is made. The arbitrators may make an declared such proceedings in lieu of hearing closed.
ocular inspection of any matter or premises which are This period may be extended by mutual consent of the
in dispute, but such inspection shall be made only in parties.alf-itc
the presence of all parties to the arbitration, unless any
party who shall have received notice thereof fails to Section 20. Form and contents of award. - The award
appear, in which event such inspection shall be made must be made in writing and signed and acknowledged
in the absence of such party. by a majority of the arbitrators, if more than one; and
by the sole arbitrator, if there is only one. Each party
Section 16. Briefs. - At the close of the hearings, the shall be furnished with a copy of the award. The
arbitrators shall specifically inquire of all parties arbitrators in their award may grant any remedy or
whether they have any further proof or witnesses to relief which they deem just and equitable and within
present; upon the receipt of a negative reply from all the scope of the agreement of the parties, which shall
parties, the arbitrators shall declare the hearing closed
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 54

include, but not be limited to, the specific performance (b) That there was evident partiality or corruption in
of a contract. the arbitrators or any of them; or

In the event that the parties to an arbitration have, (c) That the arbitrators were guilty of misconduct in
during the course of such arbitration, settled their refusing to postpone the hearing upon sufficient cause
dispute, they may request of the arbitrators that such shown, or in refusing to hear evidence pertinent and
settlement be embodied in an award which shall be material to the controversy; that one or more of the
signed by the arbitrators. No arbitrator shall act as a arbitrators was disqualified to act as such under
mediator in any proceeding in which he is acting as section nine hereof, and wilfully refrained from
arbitrator; and all negotiations towards settlement of disclosing such disqualifications or of any other
the dispute must take place without the presence of the misbehavior by which the rights of any party have been
arbitrators. materially prejudiced; or

The arbitrators shall have the power to decide only (d) That the arbitrators exceeded their powers, or so
those matters which have been submitted to them. The imperfectly executed them, that a mutual, final and
terms of the award shall be confined to such disputes. definite award upon the subject matter submitted to
them was not made.
The arbitrators shall have the power to assess in their
award the expenses of any party against another party, Where an award is vacated, the court, in its discretion,
when such assessment shall be deemed necessary. may direct a new hearing either before the same
arbitrators or before a new arbitrator or arbitrators to
Section 21. Fees of arbitration. - The fees of the be chosen in the manner provided in the submission or
arbitrators shall be fifty pesos per day unless the contract for the selection of the original arbitrator or
parties agree otherwise in writing prior to the arbitrators, and any provision limiting the time in
arbitration. which the arbitrators may make a decision shall be
deemed applicable to the new arbitration and to
Section 22. Arbitration deemed a special proceeding. - commence from the date of the court's order.
Arbitration under a contract or submission shall be
deemed a special proceeding, of which the court Where the court vacates an award, costs, not exceeding
specified in the contract or submission, or if none be fifty pesos and disbursements may be awarded to the
specified, the Court of First Instance for the province prevailing party and the payment thereof may be
or city in which one of the parties resides or is doing enforced in like manner as the payment of costs upon
business, or in which the arbitration was held, shall the motion in an action.
have jurisdiction. Any application to the court, or a
judge thereof, hereunder shall be made in manner Section 25. Grounds for modifying or correcting award.
provided for the making and hearing of motions, - In any one of the following cases, the court must
except as otherwise herein expressly provided. make an order modifying or correcting the award,
upon the application of any party to the controversy
Section 23. Confirmation of award. - At any time which was arbitrated:
within one month after the award is made, any party to
the controversy which was arbitrated may apply to the (a) Where there was an evident miscalculation of
court having jurisdiction, as provided in section figures, or an evident mistake in the description of any
twenty-eight, for an order confirming the award; and person, thing or property referred to in the award; or
thereupon the court must grant such order unless the
award is vacated, modified or corrected, as prescribed (b) Where the arbitrators have awarded upon a matter
herein. Notice of such motion must be served upon the not submitted to them, not affecting the merits of the
adverse party or his attorney as prescribed by law for decision upon the matter submitted; or
the service of such notice upon an attorney in action in
the same court. (c) Where the award is imperfect in a matter of form
not affecting the merits of the controversy, and if it had
Section 24. Grounds for vacating award. - In any one of been a commissioner's report, the defect could have
the following cases, the court must make an order been amended or disregarded by the court.
vacating the award upon the petition of any party to
the controversy when such party proves affirmatively The order may modify and correct the award so as to
that in the arbitration proceedings: effect the intent thereof and promote justice between
the parties.
(a) The award was procured by corruption, fraud, or
other undue means; or Section 26. Motion to vacate, modify or correct award:
when made. - Notice of a motion to vacate, modify or
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 55

correct the award must be served upon the adverse must be served. Upon confirming an award, where a
party or his counsel within thirty days after award is party has died since it was filed or delivered, the court
filed or delivered, as prescribed by law for the service must enter judgment in the name of the original party;
upon an attorney in an action. and the proceedings thereupon are the same as where
a party dies after a verdict.
Section 27. Judgment. - Upon the granting of an order
confirming, modifying or correcting an award, Section 31. Repealing clause. - The provisions of
judgment may be entered in conformity therewith in chapters one and two, Title XIV, of the Civil Code shall
the court wherein said application was filed. Costs of remain in force. All other laws and parts of laws
the application and the proceedings subsequent inconsistent with this Act are hereby repealed. If any
thereto may be awarded by the court in its discretion. provision of this Act shall be held invalid the
If awarded, the amount thereof must be included in the remainder that shall not be affected thereby.
judgment.
Section 32. Effectivity. - This Act shall take effect six
Section 28. Papers to accompany motion to confirm, months after its approval.
modify, correct, or vacate award. - The party moving
for an order confirming, modifying, correcting, or
vacating an award, shall at the time that such motion is 3.4 A.M. No. 07-11-08-SC
filed with the court for the entry of judgment thereon
SPECIAL RULES OF COURT ON
also file the following papers with the Clerk of Court;
ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE
(a) The submission, or contract to arbitrate; the RESOLUTION September 1, 2009
appointment of the arbitrator or arbitrators; and each
written extension of the time, if any, within which to Acting on the recommendation of the Chairperson of
make the award. the Sub-Committee on the Rules on Alternative
Dispute Resolution submitting for this Courts
(b) A verified of the award. consideration and approval the proposed Special Rules
of Court on Alternative Dispute Resolution, the Court
(c) Each notice, affidavit, or other paper used upon the Resolved to APPROVE the same.
application to confirm, modify, correct or vacate such
award, and a copy of each of the court upon such This Rule shall take effect on October 30, 2009
application. following its publication in three (3) newspapers of
general circulation.
The judgment shall be docketed as if it were rendered
in an action. SPECIAL RULES OF COURT ON ALTERNATIVE
DISPUTE RESOLUTION
The judgment so entered shall have the same force and
effect in all respects, as, and be subject to all the PART I
provisions relating to, a judgment in an action; and it GENERAL PROVISIONS AND POLICIES
may be enforced as if it had been rendered in the court
in which it is entered. RULE 1: GENERAL PROVISIONS

Section 29. Appeals. - An appeal may be taken from an Rule 1.1. Subject matter and governing rules.-The
order made in a proceeding under this Act, or from a Special Rules of Court on Alternative Dispute
judgment entered upon an award through certiorari Resolution (the "Special ADR Rules") shall apply to
proceedings, but such appeals shall be limited to and govern the following cases:
questions of law. The proceedings upon such an
appeal, including the judgment thereon shall be a. Relief on the issue of Existence, Validity, or
governed by the Rules of Court in so far as they are Enforceability of the Arbitration Agreement;
applicable.
b. Referral to Alternative Dispute Resolution ("ADR");
Section 30. Death of party. - Where a party dies after
making a submission or a contract to arbitrate as c. Interim Measures of Protection;
prescribed in this Act, the proceedings may be begun
or continued upon the application of, or notice to, his d. Appointment of Arbitrator;
executor or administrator, or temporary administrator
of his estate. In any such case, the court may issue an e. Challenge to Appointment of Arbitrator;
order extending the time within which notice of a
motion to confirm, vacate, modify or correct an award
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 56

f. Termination of Mandate of Arbitrator; or delivery receipt must state the circumstances of the
attempted service and refusal or failure thereof.
g. Assistance in Taking Evidence;
(B) Notice.-Except for cases involving Referral to ADR
h. Confirmation, Correction or Vacation of Award in and Confidentiality/Protective Orders made through
Domestic Arbitration; motions, the court shall, if it finds the petition
sufficient in form and substance, send notice to the
i. Recognition and Enforcement or Setting Aside of an parties directing them to appear at a particular time
Award in International Commercial Arbitration; and date for the hearing thereof which shall be set no
later than five (5) days from the lapse of the period for
j. Recognition and Enforcement of a Foreign Arbitral filing the opposition or comment. The notice to the
Award; respondent shall contain a statement allowing him to
file a comment or opposition to the petition within
k. Confidentiality/Protective Orders; and fifteen (15) days from receipt of the notice.

l. Deposit and Enforcement of Mediated Settlement The motion filed pursuant to the rules on Referral to
Agreements. ADR or Confidentiality/Protective Orders shall be set
for hearing by the movant and contain a notice of
Rule 1.2. Nature of the proceedings.-All proceedings hearing that complies with the requirements under
under the Special ADR Rules are special proceedings. Rule 15 of the Rules of Court on motions.

Rule 1.3. Summary proceedings in certain cases.-The (C) Summary hearing. - In all cases, as far as
proceedings in the following instances are summary in practicable, the summary hearing shall be conducted
nature and shall be governed by this provision: in one (1) day and only for purposes of clarifying facts.

a. Judicial Relief Involving the Issue of Existence, Except in cases involving Referral to ADR or
Validity or Enforceability of the Arbitration Confidentiality/Protective Orders made through
Agreement; motions, it shall be the court that sets the petition for
hearing within five (5) days from the lapse of the
b. Referral to ADR; period for filing the opposition or comment.

c. Interim Measures of Protection; (D) Resolution. - The court shall resolve the matter
within a period of thirty (30) days from the day of the
d. Appointment of Arbitrator; hearing.

e. Challenge to Appointment of Arbitrator; Rule 1.4. Verification and submissions. -Any pleading,
motion, opposition, comment, defense or claim filed
f. Termination of Mandate of Arbitrator; under the Special ADR Rules by the proper party shall
be supported by verified statements that the affiant has
g. Assistance in Taking Evidence; read the same and that the factual allegations therein
are true and correct of his own personal knowledge or
h. Confidentiality/Protective Orders; and based on authentic records and shall contain as
annexes the supporting documents.
i. Deposit and Enforcement of Mediated Settlement
Agreements. The annexes to the pleading, motion, opposition,
comment, defense or claim filed by the proper party
(A) Service and filing of petition in summary may include a legal brief, duly verified by the lawyer
proceedings.-The petitioner shall serve, either by submitting it, stating the pertinent facts, the applicable
personal service or courier, a copy of the petition upon law and jurisprudence to justify the necessity for the
the respondent before the filing thereof. Proof of court to rule upon the issue raised.
service shall be attached to the petition filed in court.
Rule 1.5. Certification Against Forum Shopping. - A
For personal service, proof of service of the petition Certification Against Forum Shopping is one made
consists of the affidavit of the person who effected under oath made by the petitioner or movant: (a) that
service, stating the time, place and manner of the he has not theretofore commenced any action or filed
service on the respondent. For service by courier, proof any claim involving the same issues in any court,
of service consists of the signed courier proof of tribunal or quasi-judicial agency and, to the best of his
delivery. If service is refused or has failed, the affidavit knowledge, no such other action or claim is pending
therein; (b) if there is such other pending action or
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 57

claim, a complete statement of the present status initiatory pleadings shall be filed directly with the
thereof; and (c) if he should thereafter learn that the court. The court will then cause the initiatory pleading
same or similar action or claim has been filed or is to be served upon the respondent by personal service
pending, he shall report that fact within five (5) days or courier. Where an action is already pending,
therefrom to the court wherein his aforementioned pleadings, motions and other papers shall be filed
petition or motion has been filed. and/or served by the concerned party by personal
service or courier. Where courier services are not
A Certification Against Forum Shopping shall be available, resort to registered mail is allowed.
appended to all initiatory pleadings except a Motion to
Refer the Dispute to Alternative Dispute Resolution. (A) Proof of filing. - The filing of a pleading shall be
proved by its existence in the record of the case. If it is
Rule 1.6. Prohibited submissions. - The following not in the record, but is claimed to have been filed
pleadings, motions, or petitions shall not be allowed in personally, the filing shall be proved by the written or
the cases governed by the Special ADR Rules and shall stamped acknowledgment of its filing by the clerk of
not be accepted for filing by the Clerk of Court: court on a copy of the same; if filed by courier, by the
proof of delivery from the courier company.
a. Motion to dismiss;
(B) Proof of service. - Proof of personal service shall
b. Motion for bill of particulars; consist of a written admission by the party served, or
the official return of the server, or the affidavit of the
c. Motion for new trial or for reopening of trial; party serving, containing a full statement of the date,
place and manner of service. If the service is by
d. Petition for relief from judgment; courier, proof thereof shall consist of an affidavit of the
proper person, stating facts showing that the document
e. Motion for extension, except in cases where an ex- was deposited with the courier company in a sealed
parte temporary order of protection has been issued; envelope, plainly addressed to the party at his office, if
known, otherwise at his residence, with postage fully
f. Rejoinder to reply; pre-paid, and with instructions to the courier to
immediately provide proof of delivery.
g. Motion to declare a party in default; and
(C) Filing and service by electronic means and proof
h. Any other pleading specifically disallowed under any thereof. - Filing and service of pleadings by electronic
provision of the Special ADR Rules. transmission may be allowed by agreement of the
parties approved by the court. If the filing or service of
The court shall motu proprio order a pleading/motion a pleading or motion was done by electronic
that it has determined to be dilatory in nature be transmission, proof of filing and service shall be made
expunged from the records. in accordance with the Rules on Electronic Evidence.

Rule 1.7. Computation of time. - In computing any Rule 1.9. No summons. - In cases covered by the
period of time prescribed or allowed by the Special Special ADR Rules, a court acquires authority to act on
ADR Rules, or by order of the court, or by any the petition or motion upon proof of jurisdictional
applicable statute, the day of the act or event from facts, i.e., that the respondent was furnished a copy of
which the designated period of time begins to run is to the petition and the notice of hearing.
be excluded and the date of performance included. If
the last day of the period, as thus computed, falls on a (A) Proof of service. - A proof of service of the petition
Saturday, a Sunday, or a legal holiday in the place and notice of hearing upon respondent shall be made
where the court sits, the time shall not run until the in writing by the server and shall set forth the manner,
next working day. place and date of service.

Should an act be done which effectively interrupts the (B) Burden of proof. - The burden of showing that a
running of the period, the allowable period after such copy of the petition and the notice of hearing were
interruption shall start to run on the day after notice of served on the respondent rests on the petitioner.
the cessation of the cause thereof.
The technical rules on service of summons do not
The day of the act that caused the interruption shall be apply to the proceedings under the Special ADR Rules.
excluded from the computation of the period. In instances where the respondent, whether a natural
or a juridical person, was not personally served with a
Rule 1.8. Service and filing of pleadings, motions and copy of the petition and notice of hearing in the
other papers in non-summary proceedings. - The proceedings contemplated in the first paragraph of
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 58

Rule 1.3 (B), or the motion in proceedings f. "Verification" shall mean a certification under oath
contemplated in the second paragraph of Rule 1.3 (B), by a party or a person who has authority to act for a
the method of service resorted to must be such as to party that he has read the pleading/motion, and that
reasonably ensure receipt thereof by the respondent to he certifies to the truth of the facts stated therein on
satisfy the requirement of due process. the basis of his own personal knowledge or authentic
documents in his possession. When made by a lawyer,
Rule 1.10. Contents of petition/motion. - The initiatory verification shall mean a statement under oath by a
pleading in the form of a verified petition or motion, in lawyer signing a pleading/motion for delivery to the
the appropriate case where court proceedings have Court or to the parties that he personally prepared the
already commenced, shall include the names of the pleading/motion, that there is sufficient factual basis
parties, their addresses, the necessary allegations for the statements of fact stated therein, that there is
supporting the petition and the relief(s) sought. sufficient basis in the facts and the law to support the
prayer for relief therein, and that the pleading/motion
Rule 1.11. Definition. - The following terms shall have is filed in good faith and is not interposed for delay.
the following meanings:

a. "ADR Laws" refers to the whole body of ADR laws in Rule 1.12. Applicability of Part II on Specific Court
the Philippines. Relief. - Part II of the Special ADR Rules on Specific
Court Relief, insofar as it refers to arbitration, shall
b. "Appointing Authority" shall mean the person or also be applicable to other forms of ADR.
institution named in the arbitration agreement as the
appointing authority; or the regular arbitration Rule 1.13. Spirit and intent of the Special ADR Rules.
institution under whose rule the arbitration is agreed In situations where no specific rule is provided under
to be conducted. Where the parties have agreed to the Special ADR Rules, the court shall resolve such
submit their dispute to institutional arbitration rules, matter summarily and be guided by the spirit and
and unless they have agreed to a different procedure, intent of the Special ADR Rules and the ADR Laws.
they shall be deemed to have agreed to procedure
under such arbitration rules for the selection and RULE 2: STATEMENT OF POLICIES
appointment of arbitrators. In ad hoc arbitration, the
default appointment of arbitrators shall be made by Rule 2.1. General policies. - It is the policy of the State
the National President of the Integrated Bar of the to actively promote the use of various modes of ADR
Philippines or his duly authorized representative. and to respect party autonomy or the freedom of the
parties to make their own arrangements in the
c. "Authenticate" means to sign, execute or use a resolution of disputes with the greatest cooperation of
symbol, or encrypt a record in whole or in part, and the least intervention from the courts. To this end,
intended to identify the authenticating party and to the objectives of the Special ADR Rules are to
adopt, accept or establish the authenticity of a record encourage and promote the use of ADR, particularly
or term. arbitration and mediation, as an important means to
achieve speedy and efficient resolution of disputes,
d. "Foreign Arbitral Award" is one made in a country impartial justice, curb a litigious culture and to de-clog
other than the Philippines. court dockets.

e. "Legal Brief" is a written legal argument submitted The court shall exercise the power of judicial review as
to a court, outlining the facts derived from the factual provided by these Special ADR Rules. Courts shall
statements in the witnesss statements of fact and intervene only in the cases allowed by law or these
citing the legal authorities relied upon by a party in a Special ADR Rules.
case submitted in connection with petitions, counter-
petitions (i.e., petitions to vacate or to set aside and/or Rule 2.2. Policy on arbitration.- (A) Where the parties
to correct/modify in opposition to petitions to confirm have agreed to submit their dispute to arbitration,
or to recognize and enforce, or petitions to confirm or courts shall refer the parties to arbitration pursuant to
to recognize and enforce in opposition to petitions to Republic Act No. 9285 bearing in mind that such
vacate or set aside and/or correct/modify), motions, arbitration agreement is the law between the parties
evidentiary issues and other matters that arise during and that they are expected to abide by it in good faith.
the course of a case. The legal brief shall state the Further, the courts shall not refuse to refer parties to
applicable law and the relevant jurisprudence and the arbitration for reasons including, but not limited to,
legal arguments in support of a partys position in the the following:
case.
a. The referral tends to oust a court of its jurisdiction;
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 59

b. The court is in a better position to resolve the existence or validity of the arbitration agreement.
dispute subject of arbitration; When a court is asked to rule upon issue/s affecting
the competence or jurisdiction of an arbitral tribunal
c. The referral would result in multiplicity of suits; in a dispute brought before it, either before or after the
arbitral tribunal is constituted, the court must exercise
d. The arbitration proceeding has not commenced; judicial restraint and defer to the competence or
jurisdiction of the arbitral tribunal by allowing the
e. The place of arbitration is in a foreign country; arbitral tribunal the first opportunity to rule upon such
issues.
f. One or more of the issues are legal and one or more
of the arbitrators are not lawyers; Where the court is asked to make a determination of
whether the arbitration agreement is null and void,
g. One or more of the arbitrators are not Philippine inoperative or incapable of being performed, under
nationals; or this policy of judicial restraint, the court must make no
more than a prima facie determination of that issue.
h. One or more of the arbitrators are alleged not to
possess the required qualification under the Unless the court, pursuant to such prima facie
arbitration agreement or law. determination, concludes that the arbitration
agreement is null and void, inoperative or incapable of
(B) Where court intervention is allowed under ADR being performed, the court must suspend the action
Laws or the Special ADR Rules, courts shall not refuse before it and refer the parties to arbitration pursuant
to grant relief, as provided herein, for any of the to the arbitration agreement.
following reasons:
Rule 2.5. Policy on mediation. - The Special ADR Rules
a. Prior to the constitution of the arbitral tribunal, the do not apply to Court-Annexed Mediation, which shall
court finds that the principal action is the subject of an be governed by issuances of the Supreme Court.
arbitration agreement; or
Where the parties have agreed to submit their dispute
b. The principal action is already pending before an to mediation, a court before which that dispute was
arbitral tribunal. brought shall suspend the proceedings and direct the
parties to submit their dispute to private mediation. If
The Special ADR Rules recognize the principle of the parties subsequently agree, however, they may opt
competence-competence, which means that the to have their dispute settled through Court-Annexed
arbitral tribunal may initially rule on its own Mediation.
jurisdiction, including any objections with respect to
the existence or validity of the arbitration agreement or Rule 2.6. Policy on Arbitration-Mediation or
any condition precedent to the filing of a request for Mediation-Arbitration. - No arbitrator shall act as a
arbitration. mediator in any proceeding in which he is acting as
arbitrator; and all negotiations towards settlement of
The Special ADR Rules recognize the principle of the dispute must take place without the presence of
separability of the arbitration clause, which means that that arbitrator. Conversely, no mediator shall act as
said clause shall be treated as an agreement arbitrator in any proceeding in which he acted as
independent of the other terms of the contract of mediator.
which it forms part. A decision that the contract is null
and void shall not entail ipso jure the invalidity of the Rule 2.7. Conversion of a settlement agreement to an
arbitration clause. arbitral award. - Where the parties to mediation have
agreed in the written settlement agreement that the
Rule 2.3. Rules governing arbitral proceedings. - The mediator shall become the sole arbitrator for the
parties are free to agree on the procedure to be dispute or that the settlement agreement shall become
followed in the conduct of arbitral proceedings. Failing an arbitral award, the sole arbitrator shall issue the
such agreement, the arbitral tribunal may conduct settlement agreement as an arbitral award, which shall
arbitration in the manner it considers appropriate. be subject to enforcement under the law.

Rule 2.4. Policy implementing competence- PART II


competence principle. - The arbitral tribunal shall be SPECIFIC COURT RELIEF
accorded the first opportunity or competence to rule
on the issue of whether or not it has the competence or RULE 3: JUDICIAL RELIEF INVOLVING THE ISSUE
jurisdiction to decide a dispute submitted to it for OF EXISTENCE, VALIDITY AND ENFORCEABILITY
decision, including any objection with respect to the OF THE ARBITRATION AGREEMENT
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 60

Rule 3.1. When judicial relief is available. - The judicial Rule 3.8. Court action. - In resolving the petition, the
relief provided in Rule 3, whether resorted to before or court must exercise judicial restraint in accordance
after commencement of arbitration, shall apply only with the policy set forth in Rule 2.4, deferring to the
when the place of arbitration is in the Philippines. competence or jurisdiction of the arbitral tribunal to
rule on its competence or jurisdiction.
A. Judicial Relief before Commencement of Arbitration
Rule 3.9. No forum shopping. - A petition for judicial
Rule 3.2. Who may file petition. - Any party to an relief under this Rule may not be commenced when the
arbitration agreement may petition the appropriate existence, validity or enforceability of an arbitration
court to determine any question concerning the agreement has been raised as one of the issues in a
existence, validity and enforceability of such prior action before the same or another court.
arbitration agreement serving a copy thereof on the
respondent in accordance with Rule 1.4 (A). Rule 3.10. Application for interim relief. - If the
petitioner also applies for an interim measure of
Rule 3.3. When the petition may be filed. - The petition protection, he must also comply with the requirements
for judicial determination of the existence, validity of the Special ADR Rules for the application for an
and/or enforceability of an arbitration agreement may interim measure of protection.
be filed at any time prior to the commencement of
arbitration. Rule 3.11. Relief against court action. - Where there is a
prima facie determination upholding the arbitration
Despite the pendency of the petition provided herein, agreement.-A prima facie determination by the court
arbitral proceedings may nevertheless be commenced upholding the existence, validity or enforceability of an
and continue to the rendition of an award, while the arbitration agreement shall not be subject to a motion
issue is pending before the court. for reconsideration, appeal or certiorari.

Rule 3.4. Venue. - A petition questioning the existence, Such prima facie determination will not, however,
validity and enforceability of an arbitration agreement prejudice the right of any party to raise the issue of the
may be filed before the Regional Trial Court of the existence, validity and enforceability of the arbitration
place where any of the petitioners or respondents has agreement before the arbitral tribunal or the court in
his principal place of business or residence. an action to vacate or set aside the arbitral award. In
the latter case, the courts review of the arbitral
Rule 3.5. Grounds. - A petition may be granted only if tribunals ruling upholding the existence, validity or
it is shown that the arbitration agreement is, under the enforceability of the arbitration agreement shall no
applicable law, invalid, void, unenforceable or longer be limited to a mere prima facie determination
inexistent. of such issue or issues as prescribed in this Rule, but
shall be a full review of such issue or issues with due
Rule 3.6. Contents of petition. - The verified petition regard, however, to the standard for review for arbitral
shall state the following: awards prescribed in these Special ADR Rules.

a. The facts showing that the persons named as B. Judicial Relief after Arbitration Commences
petitioner or respondent have legal capacity to sue or
be sued; Rule 3.12. Who may file petition. - Any party to
arbitration may petition the appropriate court for
b. The nature and substance of the dispute between the judicial relief from the ruling of the arbitral tribunal on
parties; a preliminary question upholding or declining its
jurisdiction. Should the ruling of the arbitral tribunal
c. The grounds and the circumstances relied upon by declining its jurisdiction be reversed by the court, the
the petitioner to establish his position; and parties shall be free to replace the arbitrators or any
one of them in accordance with the rules that were
d. The relief/s sought. applicable for the appointment of arbitrator sought to
be replaced.
Apart from other submissions, the petitioner must
attach to the petition an authentic copy of the Rule 3.13. When petition may be filed. - The petition
arbitration agreement. may be filed within thirty (30) days after having
received notice of that ruling by the arbitral tribunal.
Rule 3.7. Comment/Opposition.-The
comment/opposition of the respondent must be filed Rule 3.14. Venue. - The petition may be filed before the
within fifteen (15) days from service of the petition. Regional Trial Court of the place where arbitration is
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 61

taking place, or where any of the petitioners or Rule 3.19. Relief against court action. - The aggrieved
respondents has his principal place of business or party may file a motion for reconsideration of the order
residence. of the court. The decision of the court shall, however,
not be subject to appeal. The ruling of the court
Rule 3.15. Grounds. - The petition may be granted affirming the arbitral tribunals jurisdiction shall not
when the court finds that the arbitration agreement is be subject to a petition for certiorari. The ruling of the
invalid, inexistent or unenforceable as a result of which court that the arbitral tribunal has no jurisdiction may
the arbitral tribunal has no jurisdiction to resolve the be the subject of a petition for certiorari.
dispute.
Rule 3.20. Where no petition is allowed. - Where the
Rule 3.16. Contents of petition. - The petition shall arbitral tribunal defers its ruling on preliminary
state the following: question regarding its jurisdiction until its final award,
the aggrieved party cannot seek judicial relief to
a. The facts showing that the person named as question the deferral and must await the final arbitral
petitioner or respondent has legal capacity to sue or be award before seeking appropriate judicial recourse.
sued;
A ruling by the arbitral tribunal deferring resolution on
b. The nature and substance of the dispute between the the issue of its jurisdiction until final award, shall not
parties; be subject to a motion for reconsideration, appeal or a
petition for certiorari.
c. The grounds and the circumstances relied upon by
the petitioner; and Rule 3.21. Rendition of arbitral award before court
decision on petition from arbitral tribunals
d. The relief/s sought. preliminary ruling on jurisdiction. - If the arbitral
tribunal renders a final arbitral award and the Court
In addition to the submissions, the petitioner shall has not rendered a decision on the petition from the
attach to the petition a copy of the request for arbitral tribunals preliminary ruling affirming its
arbitration and the ruling of the arbitral tribunal. jurisdiction, that petition shall become ipso facto moot
and academic and shall be dismissed by the Regional
The arbitrators shall be impleaded as nominal parties Trial Court. The dismissal shall be without prejudice to
to the case and shall be notified of the progress of the the right of the aggrieved party to raise the same issue
case. in a timely petition to vacate or set aside the award.

Rule 3.17. Comment/Opposition. - The Rule 3.22. Arbitral tribunal a nominal party. - The
comment/opposition must be filed within fifteen (15) arbitral tribunal is only a nominal party. The court
days from service of the petition. shall not require the arbitral tribunal to submit any
pleadings or written submissions but may consider the
Rule 3.18. Court action. - (A) Period for resolving the same should the latter participate in the proceedings,
petition.- The court shall render judgment on the basis but only as nominal parties thereto.
of the pleadings filed and the evidence, if any,
submitted by the parties, within thirty (30) days from RULE 4: REFERRAL TO ADR
the time the petition is submitted for resolution.
Rule 4.1. Who makes the request. - A party to a
(B) No injunction of arbitration proceedings. - The pending action filed in violation of the arbitration
court shall not enjoin the arbitration proceedings agreement, whether contained in an arbitration clause
during the pendency of the petition. or in a submission agreement, may request the court to
refer the parties to arbitration in accordance with such
Judicial recourse to the court shall not prevent the agreement.
arbitral tribunal from continuing the proceedings and
rendering its award. Rule 4.2. When to make request. - (A) Where the
arbitration agreement exists before the action is filed. -
(C) When dismissal of petition is appropriate. - The The request for referral shall be made not later than
court shall dismiss the petition if it fails to comply with the pre-trial conference. After the pre-trial conference,
Rule 3.16 above; or if upon consideration of the the court will only act upon the request for referral if it
grounds alleged and the legal briefs submitted by the is made with the agreement of all parties to the case.
parties, the petition does not appear to be prima facie
meritorious. (B) Submission agreement. - If there is no existing
arbitration agreement at the time the case is filed but
the parties subsequently enter into an arbitration
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 62

agreement, they may request the court to refer their b. Not all of the parties to the civil action are bound by
dispute to arbitration at any time during the the arbitration agreement and referral to arbitration
proceedings. would result in multiplicity of suits;

Rule 4.3. Contents of request. - The request for referral c. The issues raised in the civil action could be speedily
shall be in the form of a motion, which shall state that and efficiently resolved in its entirety by the court
the dispute is covered by an arbitration agreement. rather than in arbitration;

Apart from other submissions, the movant shall attach d. Referral to arbitration does not appear to be the
to his motion an authentic copy of the arbitration most prudent action; or
agreement.
e. The stay of the action would prejudice the rights of
The request shall contain a notice of hearing addressed the parties to the civil action who are not bound by the
to all parties specifying the date and time when it arbitration agreement.
would be heard. The party making the request shall
serve it upon the respondent to give him the The court may, however, issue an order directing the
opportunity to file a comment or opposition as inclusion in arbitration of those parties who are not
provided in the immediately succeeding Rule before bound by the arbitration agreement but who agree to
the hearing. such inclusion provided those originally bound by it do
not object to their inclusion.
Rule 4.4. Comment/Opposition. - The
comment/opposition must be filed within fifteen (15) Rule 4.8. Arbitration to proceed.- Despite the
days from service of the petition. The pendency of the action referred to in Rule 4.1, above,
comment/opposition should show that: (a) there is no arbitral proceedings may nevertheless be commenced
agreement to refer the dispute to arbitration; and/or or continued, and an award may be made, while the
(b) the agreement is null and void; and/or (c) the action is pending before the court.
subject-matter of the dispute is not capable of
settlement or resolution by arbitration in accordance RULE 5: INTERIM MEASURES OF PROTECTION
with Section 6 of the ADR Act.
Rule 5.1. Who may ask for interim measures of
Rule 4.5. Court action. - After hearing, the court shall protection. - A party to an arbitration agreement may
stay the action and, considering the statement of policy petition the court for interim measures of protection.
embodied in Rule 2.4, above, refer the parties to
arbitration if it finds prima facie, based on the Rule 5.2. When to petition. - A petition for an interim
pleadings and supporting documents submitted by the measure of protection may be made (a) before
parties, that there is an arbitration agreement and that arbitration is commenced, (b) after arbitration is
the subject-matter of the dispute is capable of commenced, but before the constitution of the arbitral
settlement or resolution by arbitration in accordance tribunal, or (c) after the constitution of the arbitral
with Section 6 of the ADR Act. Otherwise, the court tribunal and at any time during arbitral proceedings
shall continue with the judicial proceedings. but, at this stage, only to the extent that the arbitral
tribunal has no power to act or is unable to act
Rule 4.6. No reconsideration, appeal or certiorari. - An effectively.
order referring the dispute to arbitration shall be
immediately executory and shall not be subject to a Rule 5.3. Venue. - A petition for an interim measure of
motion for reconsideration, appeal or petition for protection may be filed with the Regional Trial Court,
certiorari. which has jurisdiction over any of the following places:

An order denying the request to refer the dispute to a. Where the principal place of business of any of the
arbitration shall not be subject to an appeal, but may parties to arbitration is located;
be the subject of a motion for reconsideration and/or a
petition for certiorari. b. Where any of the parties who are individuals
resides;
Rule 4.7. Multiple actions and parties. - The court shall
not decline to refer some or all of the parties to c. Where any of the acts sought to be enjoined are
arbitration for any of the following reasons: being performed, threatened to be performed or not
being performed; or
a. Not all of the disputes subject of the civil action may
be referred to arbitration; d. Where the real property subject of arbitration, or a
portion thereof is situated.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 63

an urgent need to either (a) preserve property, (b)
Rule 5.4. Grounds. - The following grounds, while not prevent the respondent from disposing of, or
limiting the reasons for the court to grant an interim concealing, the property, or (c) prevent the relief
measure of protection, indicate the nature of the prayed for from becoming illusory because of prior
reasons that the court shall consider in granting the notice, and the court finds that the reason/s given by
relief: the petitioner are meritorious.

a. The need to prevent irreparable loss or injury; Rule 5.8. Comment/Opposition. - The
comment/opposition must be filed within fifteen (15)
b. The need to provide security for the performance of days from service of the petition. The opposition or
any obligation; comment should state the reasons why the interim
measure of protection should not be granted.
c. The need to produce or preserve evidence; or
Rule 5.9. Court action. - After hearing the petition, the
d. The need to compel any other appropriate act or court shall balance the relative interests of the parties
omission. and inconveniences that may be caused, and on that
basis resolve the matter within thirty (30) days from
Rule 5.5. Contents of the petition. - The verified (a) submission of the opposition, or (b) upon lapse of
petition must state the following: the period to file the same, or (c) from termination of
the hearing that the court may set only if there is a
a. The fact that there is an arbitration agreement; need for clarification or further argument.

b. The fact that the arbitral tribunal has not been If the other parties fail to file their opposition on or
constituted, or if constituted, is unable to act or would before the day of the hearing, the court shall motu
be unable to act effectively; proprio render judgment only on the basis of the
allegations in the petition that are substantiated by
c. A detailed description of the appropriate relief supporting documents and limited to what is prayed
sought; for therein.

d. The grounds relied on for the allowance of the In cases where, based solely on the petition, the court
petition finds that there is an urgent need to either (a) preserve
property, (b) prevent the respondent from disposing
Apart from other submissions, the petitioner must of, or concealing, the property, or (c) prevent the relief
attach to his petition an authentic copy of the prayed for from becoming illusory because of prior
arbitration agreement. notice, it shall issue an immediately executory
temporary order of protection and require the
Rule 5.6. Type of interim measure of protection that a petitioner, within five (5) days from receipt of that
court may grant.- The following, among others, are the order, to post a bond to answer for any damage that
interim measures of protection that a court may grant: respondent may suffer as a result of its order. The ex-
parte temporary order of protection shall be valid only
a. Preliminary injunction directed against a party to for a period of twenty (20) days from the service on the
arbitration; party required to comply with the order. Within that
period, the court shall:
b. Preliminary attachment against property or
garnishment of funds in the custody of a bank or a a. Furnish the respondent a copy of the petition and a
third person; notice requiring him to comment thereon on or before
the day the petition will be heard; and
c. Appointment of a receiver;
b. Notify the parties that the petition shall be heard on
d. Detention, preservation, delivery or inspection of a day specified in the notice, which must not be beyond
property; or, the twenty (20) day period of the effectivity of the ex-
parte order.
e. Assistance in the enforcement of an interim measure
of protection granted by the arbitral tribunal, which The respondent has the option of having the temporary
the latter cannot enforce effectively. order of protection lifted by posting an appropriate
counter-bond as determined by the court.
Rule 5.7. Dispensing with prior notice in certain cases.
- Prior notice to the other party may be dispensed with If the respondent requests the court for an extension of
when the petitioner alleges in the petition that there is the period to file his opposition or comment or to reset
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 64

the hearing to a later date, and such request is granted,
the court shall extend the period of validity of the ex- An interim measure of protection issued by the arbitral
parte temporary order of protection for no more than tribunal shall, upon its issuance be deemed to have
twenty days from expiration of the original period. ipso jure modified, amended, revised or revoked an
interim measure of protection previously issued by the
After notice and hearing, the court may either grant or court to the extent that it is inconsistent with the
deny the petition for an interim measure of protection. subsequent interim measure of protection issued by
The order granting or denying any application for the arbitral tribunal.
interim measure of protection in aid of arbitration
must indicate that it is issued without prejudice to Rule 5.14. Conflict or inconsistency between interim
subsequent grant, modification, amendment, revision measure of protection issued by the court and by the
or revocation by an arbitral tribunal. arbitral tribunal. - Any question involving a conflict or
inconsistency between an interim measure of
Rule 5.10. Relief against court action. - If respondent protection issued by the court and by the arbitral
was given an opportunity to be heard on a petition for tribunal shall be immediately referred by the court to
an interim measure of protection, any order by the the arbitral tribunal which shall have the authority to
court shall be immediately executory, but may be the decide such question.
subject of a motion for reconsideration and/or appeal
or, if warranted, a petition for certiorari. Rule 5.15. Court to defer action on petition for an
interim measure of protection when informed of
Rule 5.11. Duty of the court to refer back. - The court constitution of the arbitral tribunal. - The court shall
shall not deny an application for assistance in defer action on any pending petition for an interim
implementing or enforcing an interim measure of measure of protection filed by a party to an arbitration
protection ordered by an arbitral tribunal on any or all agreement arising from or in connection with a dispute
of the following grounds: thereunder upon being informed that an arbitral
tribunal has been constituted pursuant to such
a. The arbitral tribunal granted the interim relief ex agreement. The court may act upon such petition only
parte; or if it is established by the petitioner that the arbitral
tribunal has no power to act on any such interim
b. The party opposing the application found new measure of protection or is unable to act thereon
material evidence, which the arbitral tribunal had not effectively.
considered in granting in the application, and which, if
considered, may produce a different result; or Rule 5.16. Court assistance should arbitral tribunal be
unable to effectively enforce interim measure of
c. The measure of protection ordered by the arbitral protection. - The court shall assist in the enforcement
tribunal amends, revokes, modifies or is inconsistent of an interim measure of protection issued by the
with an earlier measure of protection issued by the arbitral tribunal which it is unable to effectively
court. enforce.

If it finds that there is sufficient merit in the opposition RULE 6: APPOINTMENT OF ARBITRATORS
to the application based on letter (b) above, the court
shall refer the matter back to the arbitral tribunal for Rule 6.1. When the court may act as Appointing
appropriate determination. Authority. - The court shall act as Appointing
Authority only in the following instances:
Rule 5.12. Security. - The order granting an interim
measure of protection may be conditioned upon the a. Where any of the parties in an institutional
provision of security, performance of an act, or arbitration failed or refused to appoint an arbitrator or
omission thereof, specified in the order. when the parties have failed to reach an agreement on
the sole arbitrator (in an arbitration before a sole
The Court may not change or increase or decrease the arbitrator) or when the two designated arbitrators have
security ordered by the arbitral tribunal. failed to reach an agreement on the third or presiding
arbitrator (in an arbitration before a panel of three
Rule 5.13. Modification, amendment, revision or arbitrators), and the institution under whose rules
revocation of courts previously issued interim arbitration is to be conducted fails or is unable to
measure of protection. - Any court order granting or perform its duty as appointing authority within a
denying interim measure/s of protection is issued reasonable time from receipt of the request for
without prejudice to subsequent grant, modification, appointment;
amendment, revision or revocation by the arbitral
tribunal as may be warranted.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 65

b. In all instances where arbitration is ad hoc and the e. The fact that the Appointing Authority, without
parties failed to provide a method for appointing or justifiable cause, has failed or refused to act as such
replacing an arbitrator, or substitute arbitrator, or the within the time prescribed or in the absence thereof,
method agreed upon is ineffective, and the National within a reasonable time, from the date a request is
President of the Integrated Bar of the Philippines (IBP) made; and
or his duly authorized representative fails or refuses to
act within such period as may be allowed under the f. The petitioner is not the cause of the delay in, or
pertinent rules of the IBP or within such period as may failure of, the appointment of the arbitrator.
be agreed upon by the parties, or in the absence
thereof, within thirty (30) days from receipt of such Apart from other submissions, the petitioner must
request for appointment; attach to the petition (a) an authentic copy of the
arbitration agreement, and (b) proof that the
c. Where the parties agreed that their dispute shall be Appointing Authority has been notified of the filing of
resolved by three arbitrators but no method of the petition for appointment with the court.
appointing those arbitrators has been agreed upon,
each party shall appoint one arbitrator and the two Rule 6.5. Comment/Opposition. - The
arbitrators thus appointed shall appoint a third comment/opposition must be filed within fifteen (15)
arbitrator. If a party fails to appoint his arbitrator days from service of the petition.
within thirty (30) days of receipt of a request to do so
from the other party, or if the two arbitrators fail to Rule 6.6. Submission of list of arbitrators. - The court
agree on the third arbitrator within a reasonable time may, at its option, also require each party to submit a
from their appointment, the appointment shall be list of not less than three (3) proposed arbitrators
made by the Appointing Authority. If the latter fails or together with their curriculum vitae.
refuses to act or appoint an arbitrator within a
reasonable time from receipt of the request to do so, Rule 6.7. Court action. - After hearing, if the court
any party or the appointed arbitrator/s may request finds merit in the petition, it shall appoint an
the court to appoint an arbitrator or the third arbitrator; otherwise, it shall dismiss the petition.
arbitrator as the case may be.
In making the appointment, the court shall have
Rule 6.2. Who may request for appointment. - Any regard to such considerations as are likely to secure the
party to an arbitration may request the court to act as appointment of an independent and impartial
an Appointing Authority in the instances specified in arbitrator.
Rule 6.1 above.
At any time after the petition is filed and before the
Rule 6.3. Venue. - The petition for appointment of court makes an appointment, it shall also dismiss the
arbitrator may be filed, at the option of the petitioner, petition upon being informed that the Appointing
in the Regional Trial Court (a) where the principal Authority has already made the appointment.
place of business of any of the parties is located, (b) if
any of the parties are individuals, where those Rule 6.8. Forum shopping prohibited. - When there is
individuals reside, or (c) in the National Capital a pending petition in another court to declare the
Region. arbitration agreement inexistent, invalid,
unenforceable, on account of which the respondent
Rule 6.4. Contents of the petition. -The petition shall failed or refused to participate in the selection and
state the following: appointment of a sole arbitrator or to appoint a party-
nominated arbitrator, the petition filed under this rule
a. The general nature of the dispute; shall be dismissed.

b. If the parties agreed on an appointment procedure, a Rule 6.9. Relief against court action. - If the court
description of that procedure with reference to the appoints an arbitrator, the order appointing an
agreement where such may be found; arbitrator shall be immediately executory and shall not
be the subject of a motion for reconsideration, appeal
c. The number of arbitrators agreed upon or the or certiorari. An order of the court denying the petition
absence of any agreement as to the number of for appointment of an arbitrator may, however, be the
arbitrators; subject of a motion for reconsideration, appeal or
certiorari.
d. The special qualifications that the arbitrator/s must
possess, if any, that were agreed upon by the parties; RULE 7: CHALLENGE TO APPOINTMENT OF
ARBITRATOR
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 66

Rule 7.1. Who may challenge. - Any of the parties to an Rule 7.6. Comment/Opposition. - The challenged
arbitration may challenge an arbitrator. arbitrator or other parties may file a comment or
opposition within fifteen (15) days from service of the
Rule 7.2. When challenge may be raised in court. - petition.
When an arbitrator is challenged before the arbitral
tribunal under the procedure agreed upon by the Rule 7.7. Court action. - After hearing, the court shall
parties or under the procedure provided for in Article remove the challenged arbitrator if it finds merit in the
13 (2) of the Model Law and the challenge is not petition; otherwise, it shall dismiss the petition.
successful, the aggrieved party may request the
Appointing Authority to rule on the challenge, and it is The court shall allow the challenged arbitrator who
only when such Appointing Authority fails or refuses to subsequently agrees to accept the challenge to
act on the challenge within such period as may be withdraw as arbitrator.
allowed under the applicable rule or in the absence
thereof, within thirty (30) days from receipt of the The court shall accept the challenge and remove the
request, that the aggrieved party may renew the arbitrator in the following cases:
challenge in court.
a. The party or parties who named and appointed the
Rule 7.3. Venue. - The challenge shall be filed with the challenged arbitrator agree to the challenge and
Regional Trial Court (a) where the principal place of withdraw the appointment.
business of any of the parties is located, (b) if any of
the parties are individuals, where those individuals b. The other arbitrators in the arbitral tribunal agree to
reside, or (c) in the National Capital Region. the removal of the challenged arbitrator; and

Rule 7.4. Grounds. - An arbitrator may be challenged c. The challenged arbitrator fails or refuses to submit
on any of the grounds for challenge provided for in his comment on the petition or the brief of legal
Republic Act No. 9285 and its implementing rules, arguments as directed by the court, or in such
Republic Act No. 876 or the Model Law. The comment or legal brief, he fails to object to his removal
nationality or professional qualification of an following the challenge.
arbitrator is not a ground to challenge an arbitrator
unless the parties have specified in their arbitration The court shall decide the challenge on the basis of
agreement a nationality and/or professional evidence submitted by the parties.
qualification for appointment as arbitrator.
The court will decide the challenge on the basis of the
Rule 7.5. Contents of the petition. - The petition shall evidence submitted by the parties in the following
state the following: instances:

a. The name/s of the arbitrator/s challenged and a. The other arbitrators in the arbitral tribunal agree to
his/their address; the removal of the challenged arbitrator; and

b. The grounds for the challenge; b. If the challenged arbitrator fails or refuses to submit
his comment on the petition or the brief of legal
c. The facts showing that the ground for the challenge arguments as directed by the court, or in such
has been expressly or impliedly rejected by the comment or brief of legal arguments, he fails to object
challenged arbitrator/s; and to his removal following the challenge.

d. The facts showing that the Appointing Authority Rule 7.8. No motion for reconsideration, appeal or
failed or refused to act on the challenge. certiorari. - Any order of the court resolving the
petition shall be immediately executory and shall not
The court shall dismiss the petition motu proprio be the subject of a motion for reconsideration, appeal,
unless it is clearly alleged therein that the Appointing or certiorari.
Authority charged with deciding the challenge, after
the resolution of the arbitral tribunal rejecting the Rule 7.9. Reimbursement of expenses and reasonable
challenge is raised or contested before such Appointing compensation to challenged arbitrator. - Unless the
Authority, failed or refused to act on the challenge bad faith of the challenged arbitrator is established
within thirty (30) days from receipt of the request or with reasonable certainty by concealing or failing to
within such longer period as may apply or as may have disclose a ground for his disqualification, the
been agreed upon by the parties. challenged arbitrator shall be entitled to
reimbursement of all reasonable expenses he may have
incurred in attending to the arbitration and to a
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 67

reasonable compensation for his work on the c. The fact that one or all of the parties had requested
arbitration. Such expenses include, but shall not be the arbitrator to withdraw but he failed or refused to
limited to, transportation and hotel expenses, if any. A do so;
reasonable compensation shall be paid to the
challenged arbitrator on the basis of the length of time d. The fact that one or all of the parties requested the
he has devoted to the arbitration and taking into Appointing Authority to act on the request for the
consideration his stature and reputation as an termination of the mandate of the arbitrator and
arbitrator. The request for reimbursement of expenses failure or inability of the Appointing Authority to act
and for payment of a reasonable compensation shall be within thirty (30) days from the request of a party or
filed in the same case and in the court where the parties or within such period as may have been agreed
petition to replace the challenged arbitrator was filed. upon by the parties or allowed under the applicable
The court, in determining the amount of the award to rule.
the challenged arbitrator, shall receive evidence of
expenses to be reimbursed, which may consist of air The petitioner shall further allege that one or all of the
tickets, hotel bills and expenses, and inland parties had requested the arbitrator to withdraw but he
transportation. The court shall direct the challenging failed or refused to do so.
party to pay the amount of the award to the court for
the account of the challenged arbitrator, in default of Rule 8.5. Comment/Opposition. - The
which the court may issue a writ of execution to comment/opposition must be filed within fifteen (15)
enforce the award. days from service of the petition.

RULE 8: TERMINATION OF THE MANDATE OF Rule 8.6. Court action. - After hearing, if the court
ARBITRATOR finds merit in the petition, it shall terminate the
mandate of the arbitrator who refuses to withdraw
Rule 8.1. Who may request termination and on what from his office; otherwise, it shall dismiss the petition.
grounds.- Any of the parties to an arbitration may
request for the termination of the mandate of an Rule 8.7. No motion for reconsideration or appeal. -
arbitrator where an arbitrator becomes de jure or de Any order of the court resolving the petition shall be
facto unable to perform his function or for other immediately executory and shall not be subject of a
reasons fails to act without undue delay and that motion for reconsideration, appeal or petition for
arbitrator, upon request of any party, fails or refuses to certiorari.
withdraw from his office.
Rule 8.8. Appointment of substitute arbitrator. -
Rule 8.2. When to request. - If an arbitrator refuses to Where the mandate of an arbitrator is terminated, or
withdraw from his office, and subsequently, the he withdraws from office for any other reason, or
Appointing Authority fails or refuses to decide on the because of his mandate is revoked by agreement of the
termination of the mandate of that arbitrator within parties or is terminated for any other reason, a
such period as may be allowed under the applicable substitute arbitrator shall be appointed according to
rule or, in the absence thereof, within thirty (30) days the rules that were applicable to the appointment of
from the time the request is brought before him, any the arbitrator being replaced.
party may file with the court a petition to terminate the
mandate of that arbitrator. RULE 9: ASSISTANCE IN TAKING EVIDENCE

Rule 8.3. Venue. - A petition to terminate the mandate Rule 9.1. Who may request assistance. - Any party to
of an arbitrator may, at that petitioners option, be an arbitration, whether domestic or foreign, may
filed with the Regional Trial Court (a) where the request the court to provide assistance in taking
principal place of business of any of the parties is evidence.
located, (b) where any of the parties who are
individuals resides, or (c) in the National Capital Rule 9.2. When assistance may be sought. - Assistance
Region. may be sought at any time during the course of the
arbitral proceedings when the need arises.
Rule 8.4. Contents of the petition. - The petition shall
state the following: Rule 9.3. Venue. - A petition for assistance in taking
evidence may, at the option of the petitioner, be filed
a. The name of the arbitrator whose mandate is sought with Regional Trial Court where (a) arbitration
to be terminated; proceedings are taking place, (b) the witnesses reside
or may be found, or (c) where the evidence may be
b. The ground/s for termination; found.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 68

Rule 9.4. Ground. - The court may grant or execute the shall order petitioner to pay costs attendant to such
request for assistance in taking evidence within its assistance.
competence and according to the rules of evidence.
Rule 9.9. Relief against court action. - The order
Rule 9.5. Type of assistance. - A party requiring granting assistance in taking evidence shall be
assistance in the taking of evidence may petition the immediately executory and not subject to
court to direct any person, including a representative reconsideration or appeal. If the court declines to grant
of a corporation, association, partnership or other assistance in taking evidence, the petitioner may file a
entity (other than a party to the ADR proceedings or its motion for reconsideration or appeal.
officers) found in the Philippines, for any of the
following: Rule 9.10. Perpetuation of testimony before the
arbitral tribunal is constituted. - At anytime before
a. To comply with a subpoena ad testificandum and/or arbitration is commenced or before the arbitral
subpoena duces tecum; tribunal is constituted, any person who desires to
perpetuate his testimony or that of another person may
b. To appear as a witness before an officer for the do so in accordance with Rule 24 of the Rules of Court.
taking of his deposition upon oral examination or by
written interrogatories; Rule 9.11. Consequence of disobedience. - The court
may impose the appropriate sanction on any person
c. To allow the physical examination of the condition of who disobeys its order to testify when required or
persons, or the inspection of things or premises and, perform any act required of him.
when appropriate, to allow the recording and/or
documentation of condition of persons, things or RULE 10: CONFIDENTIALITY/PROTECTIVE
premises (i.e., photographs, video and other means of ORDERS
recording/documentation);
Rule 10.1. Who may request confidentiality. - A party,
d. To allow the examination and copying of counsel or witness who disclosed or who was
documents; and compelled to disclose information relative to the
subject of ADR under circumstances that would create
e. To perform any similar acts. a reasonable expectation, on behalf of the source, that
the information shall be kept confidential has the right
Rule 9.6. Contents of the petition. - The petition must to prevent such information from being further
state the following: disclosed without the express written consent of the
source or the party who made the disclosure.
a. The fact that there is an ongoing arbitration
proceeding even if such proceeding could not continue Rule 10.2. When request made. - A party may request a
due to some legal impediments; protective order at anytime there is a need to enforce
the confidentiality of the information obtained, or to
b. The arbitral tribunal ordered the taking of evidence be obtained, in ADR proceedings.
or the party desires to present evidence to the arbitral
tribunal; Rule 10.3. Venue. - A petition for a protective order
may be filed with the Regional Trial Court where that
c. Materiality or relevance of the evidence to be taken; order would be implemented.
and
If there is a pending court proceeding in which the
d. The names and addresses of the intended information obtained in an ADR proceeding is
witness/es, place where the evidence may be found, required to be divulged or is being divulged, the party
the place where the premises to be inspected are seeking to enforce the confidentiality of the
located or the place where the acts required are to be information may file a motion with the court where the
done. proceedings are pending to enjoin the confidential
information from being divulged or to suppress
Rule 9.7. Comment/Opposition. - The confidential information.
comment/opposition must be filed within fifteen (15)
days from service of the petition. Rule 10.4. Grounds. - A protective order may be
granted only if it is shown that the applicant would be
Rule 9.8. Court action. - If the evidence sought is not materially prejudiced by an unauthorized disclosure of
privileged, and is material and relevant, the court shall the information obtained, or to be obtained, during an
grant the assistance in taking evidence requested and ADR proceeding.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 69

Rule 10.5. Contents of the motion or petition. - The b. A party, a mediator, or a nonparty participant may
petition or motion must state the following: refuse to disclose and may prevent any other person
from disclosing a mediation communication.
a. That the information sought to be protected was
obtained, or would be obtained, during an ADR c. In such an adversarial proceeding, the following
proceeding; persons involved or previously involved in a mediation
may not be compelled to disclose confidential
b. The applicant would be materially prejudiced by the information obtained during the mediation: (1) the
disclosure of that information; parties to the dispute; (2) the mediator or mediators;
(3) the counsel for the parties: (4) the nonparty
c. The person or persons who are being asked to participants; (5) any persons hired or engaged in
divulge the confidential information participated in an connection with the mediation as secretary,
ADR proceedings; and stenographer; clerk or assistant; and (6) any other
person who obtains or possesses confidential
d. The time, date and place when the ADR proceedings information by reason of his/ her profession.
took place.
d. The protection of the ADR Laws shall continue to
Apart from the other submissions, the movant must set apply even if a mediator is found to have failed to act
the motion for hearing and contain a notice of hearing impartially.
in accordance with Rule 15 of the Rules of Court.
e. A mediator may not be called to testify to provide
Rule 10.6. Notice. - Notice of a request for a protective information gathered in mediation. A mediator who is
order made through a motion shall be made to the wrongfully subpoenaed shall be reimbursed the full
opposing parties in accordance with Rule 15 of the cost of his attorney fees and related expenses.
Rules of Court.
Rule 10.9. Relief against court action. - The order
Rule 10.7. Comment/Opposition. - The enjoining a person or persons from divulging
comment/opposition must be filed within fifteen (15) confidential information shall be immediately
days from service of the petition. The opposition or executory and may not be enjoined while the order is
comment may be accompanied by written proof that being questioned with the appellate courts.
(a) the information is not confidential, (b) the
information was not obtained during an ADR If the court declines to enjoin a person or persons from
proceeding, (c) there was a waiver of confidentiality, or divulging confidential information, the petitioner may
(d) the petitioner/movant is precluded from asserting file a motion for reconsideration or appeal.
confidentiality.
Rule 10.10. Consequence of disobedience. - Any person
Rule 10.8. Court action. - If the court finds the petition who disobeys the order of the court to cease from
or motion meritorious, it shall issue an order enjoining divulging confidential information shall be imposed
a person or persons from divulging confidential the proper sanction by the court.
information.
RULE 11: CONFIRMATION, CORRECTION OR
In resolving the petition or motion, the courts shall be VACATION OF AWARD IN DOMESTIC
guided by the following principles applicable to all ARBITRATION
ADR proceedings: Confidential information shall not
be subject to discovery and shall be inadmissible in any Rule 11.1. Who may request confirmation, correction or
adversarial proceeding, whether judicial or quasi vacation. - Any party to a domestic arbitration may
judicial. However, evidence or information that is petition the court to confirm, correct or vacate a
otherwise admissible or subject to discovery does not domestic arbitral award.
become inadmissible or protected from discovery
solely by reason of its use therein. Rule 11.2. When to request confirmation,
correction/modification or vacation. -
For mediation proceedings, the court shall be further
guided by the following principles: (A) Confirmation. - At any time after the lapse of thirty
(30) days from receipt by the petitioner of the arbitral
a. Information obtained through mediation shall be award, he may petition the court to confirm that
privileged and confidential. award.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 70

(B) Correction/Modification. - Not later than thirty
(30) days from receipt of the arbitral award, a party e. The arbitral tribunal exceeded its powers, or so
may petition the court to correct/modify that award. imperfectly executed them, such that a complete, final
and definite award upon the subject matter submitted
(C) Vacation. - Not later than thirty (30) days from to them was not made.
receipt of the arbitral award, a party may petition the
court to vacate that award. The award may also be vacated on any or all of the
following grounds:
(D) A petition to vacate the arbitral award may be filed,
in opposition to a petition to confirm the arbitral a. The arbitration agreement did not exist, or is invalid
award, not later than thirty (30) days from receipt of for any ground for the revocation of a contract or is
the award by the petitioner. A petition to vacate the otherwise unenforceable; or
arbitral award filed beyond the reglementary period
shall be dismissed. b. A party to arbitration is a minor or a person
judicially declared to be incompetent.
(E) A petition to confirm the arbitral award may be
filed, in opposition to a petition to vacate the arbitral The petition to vacate an arbitral award on the ground
award, at any time after the petition to vacate such that the party to arbitration is a minor or a person
arbitral award is filed. The dismissal of the petition to judicially declared to be incompetent shall be filed only
vacate the arbitral award for having been filed beyond on behalf of the minor or incompetent and shall allege
the reglementary period shall not result in the that (a) the other party to arbitration had knowingly
dismissal of the petition for the confirmation of such entered into a submission or agreement with such
arbitral award. minor or incompetent, or (b) the submission to
arbitration was made by a guardian or guardian ad
(F) The filing of a petition to confirm an arbitral award litem who was not authorized to do so by a competent
shall not authorize the filing of a belated petition to court.
vacate or set aside such award in opposition thereto.
In deciding the petition to vacate the arbitral award,
(G) A petition to correct an arbitral award may be the court shall disregard any other ground than those
included as part of a petition to confirm the arbitral enumerated above.
award or as a petition to confirm that award.
(B) To correct/modify an arbitral award. - The Court
Rule 11.3. Venue. - The petition for confirmation, may correct/modify or order the arbitral tribunal to
correction/modification or vacation of a domestic correct/modify the arbitral award in the following
arbitral award may be filed with Regional Trial Court cases:
having jurisdiction over the place in which one of the
parties is doing business, where any of the parties a. Where there was an evident miscalculation of figures
reside or where arbitration proceedings were or an evident mistake in the description of any person,
conducted. thing or property referred to in the award;

Rule 11.4. Grounds. - (A) To vacate an arbitral award. - b. Where the arbitrators have awarded upon a matter
The arbitral award may be vacated on the following not submitted to them, not affecting the merits of the
grounds: decision upon the matter submitted;

a. The arbitral award was procured through c. Where the arbitrators have omitted to resolve an
corruption, fraud or other undue means; issue submitted to them for resolution; or

b. There was evident partiality or corruption in the d. Where the award is imperfect in a matter of form
arbitral tribunal or any of its members; not affecting the merits of the controversy, and if it had
been a commissioners report, the defect could have
c. The arbitral tribunal was guilty of misconduct or any been amended or disregarded by the Court.
form of misbehavior that has materially prejudiced the
rights of any party such as refusing to postpone a Rule 11.5. Form of petition. - An application to vacate
hearing upon sufficient cause shown or to hear an arbitral award shall be in the form of a petition to
evidence pertinent and material to the controversy; vacate or as a petition to vacate in opposition to a
petition to confirm the same award.
d. One or more of the arbitrators was disqualified to
act as such under the law and willfully refrained from An application to correct/modify an arbitral award
disclosing such disqualification; or may be included in a petition to confirm an arbitral
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 71

award or in a petition to vacate in opposition to d. A statement of the date of receipt of the arbitral
confirm the same award. award and the circumstances under which it was
received by the petitioner.
When a petition to confirm an arbitral award is
pending before a court, the party seeking to vacate or Apart from other submissions, the petitioner must
correct/modify said award may only apply for those attach to the petition the following:
reliefs through a petition to vacate or correct/modify
the award in opposition to the petition to confirm the a. An authentic copy of the arbitration agreement;
award provided that such petition to vacate or
correct/modify is filed within thirty (30) days from his b. An authentic copy of the arbitral award;
receipt of the award. A petition to vacate or
correct/modify an arbitral award filed in another court c. A certification against forum shopping executed by
or in a separate case before the same court shall be the applicant in accordance with Section 5 of Rule 7 of
dismissed, upon appropriate motion, as a violation of the Rules of Court; and
the rule against forum-shopping.
d. An authentic copy or authentic copies of the
When a petition to vacate or correct/modify an arbitral appointment of an arbitral tribunal.
award is pending before a court, the party seeking to
confirm said award may only apply for that relief Rule 11.7. Notice. - Upon finding that the petition filed
through a petition to confirm the same award in under this Rule is sufficient both in form and in
opposition to the petition to vacate or correct/modify substance, the Court shall cause notice and a copy of
the award. A petition to confirm or correct/modify an the petition to be delivered to the respondent allowing
arbitral award filed as separate proceeding in another him to file a comment or opposition thereto within
court or in a different case before the same court shall fifteen (15) days from receipt of the petition. In lieu of
be dismissed, upon appropriate motion, as a violation an opposition, the respondent may file a petition in
of the rule against forum shopping. opposition to the petition.

As an alternative to the dismissal of a second petition The petitioner may within fifteen (15) days from
for confirmation, vacation or correction/modification receipt of the petition in opposition thereto file a reply.
of an arbitral award filed in violation of the non-forum
shopping rule, the court or courts concerned may allow Rule 11.8. Hearing. - If the Court finds from the
the consolidation of the two proceedings in one court petition or petition in opposition thereto that there are
and in one case. issues of fact, it shall require the parties, within a
period of not more than fifteen (15) days from receipt
Where the petition to confirm the award and petition of the order, to simultaneously submit the affidavits of
to vacate or correct/modify were simultaneously filed all of their witnesses and reply affidavits within ten
by the parties in the same court or in different courts (10) days from receipt of the affidavits to be replied to.
in the Philippines, upon motion of either party, the There shall be attached to the affidavits or reply
court may order the consolidation of the two cases affidavits documents relied upon in support of the
before either court. statements of fact in such affidavits or reply affidavits.

In all instances, the petition must be verified by a If the petition or the petition in opposition thereto is
person who has knowledge of the jurisdictional facts. one for vacation of an arbitral award, the interested
party in arbitration may oppose the petition or the
Rule 11.6. Contents of petition. - The petition must petition in opposition thereto for the reason that the
state the following: grounds cited in the petition or the petition in
opposition thereto, assuming them to be true, do not
a. The addresses of the parties and any change thereof; affect the merits of the case and may be cured or
remedied. Moreover, the interested party may request
b. The jurisdictional issues raised by a party during the court to suspend the proceedings for vacation for a
arbitration proceedings; period of time and to direct the arbitral tribunal to
reopen and conduct a new hearing and take such other
c. The grounds relied upon by the parties in seeking action as will eliminate the grounds for vacation of the
the vacation of the arbitral award whether the petition award. The opposition shall be supported by a brief of
is a petition for the vacation or setting aside of the legal arguments to show the existence of a sufficient
arbitral award or a petition in opposition to a petition legal basis for the opposition.
to confirm the award; and
If the ground of the petition to vacate an arbitral award
is that the arbitration agreement did not exist, is
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 72

invalid or otherwise unenforceable, and an earlier manner provided in the arbitration agreement or
petition for judicial relief under Rule 3 had been filed, submission, or the law. In the latter case, any provision
a copy of such petition and of the decision or final limiting the time in which the arbitral tribunal may
order of the court shall be attached thereto. But if the make a decision shall be deemed applicable to the new
ground was raised before the arbitral tribunal in a arbitral tribunal.
motion to dismiss filed not later than the submission
of its answer, and the arbitral tribunal ruled in favor of In referring the case back to the arbitral tribunal or to
its own jurisdiction as a preliminary question which a new arbitral tribunal pursuant to Rule 24 of Republic
was appealed by a party to the Regional Trial Court, a Act No. 876, the court may not direct it to revise its
copy of the order, ruling or preliminary award or award in a particular way, or to revise its findings of
decision of the arbitral tribunal, the appeal therefrom fact or conclusions of law or otherwise encroach upon
to the Court and the order or decision of the Court the independence of an arbitral tribunal in the making
shall all be attached to the petition. of a final award.

If the ground of the petition is that the petitioner is an RULE 12: RECOGNITION AND ENFORCEMENT OR
infant or a person judicially declared to be SETTING ASIDE OF AN
incompetent, there shall be attached to the petition INTERNATIONALCOMMERCIAL ARBITRATION
certified copies of documents showing such fact. In AWARD
addition, the petitioner shall show that even if the
submission or arbitration agreement was entered into Rule 12.1. Who may request recognition and
by a guardian or guardian ad litem, the latter was not enforcement or setting aside. - Any party to an
authorized by a competent court to sign such the international commercial arbitration in the Philippines
submission or arbitration agreement. may petition the proper court to recognize and enforce
or set aside an arbitral award.
If on the basis of the petition, the opposition, the
affidavits and reply affidavits of the parties, the court Rule 12.2. When to file petition. - (A) Petition to
finds that there is a need to conduct an oral hearing, recognize and enforce. - The petition for enforcement
the court shall set the case for hearing. This case shall and recognition of an arbitral award may be filed
have preference over other cases before the court, anytime from receipt of the award. If, however, a
except criminal cases. During the hearing, the timely petition to set aside an arbitral award is filed,
affidavits of witnesses shall take the place of their the opposing party must file therein and in opposition
direct testimonies and they shall immediately be thereto the petition for recognition and enforcement of
subject to cross-examination thereon. The Court shall the same award within the period for filing an
have full control over the proceedings in order to opposition.
ensure that the case is heard without undue delay.
(B) Petition to set aside. - The petition to set aside an
Rule 11.9. Court action. - Unless a ground to vacate an arbitral award may only be filed within three (3)
arbitral award under Rule 11.5 above is fully months from the time the petitioner receives a copy
established, the court shall confirm the award. thereof. If a timely request is made with the arbitral
tribunal for correction, interpretation or additional
An arbitral award shall enjoy the presumption that it award, the three (3) month period shall be counted
was made and released in due course of arbitration and from the time the petitioner receives the resolution by
is subject to confirmation by the court the arbitral tribunal of that request.

In resolving the petition or petition in opposition A petition to set aside can no longer be filed after the
thereto in accordance with these Special ADR Rules, lapse of the three (3) month period. The dismissal of a
the court shall either confirm or vacate the arbitral petition to set aside an arbitral award for being time-
award. The court shall not disturb the arbitral barred shall not automatically result in the approval of
tribunals determination of facts and/or interpretation the petition filed therein and in opposition thereto for
of law. recognition and enforcement of the same award.
Failure to file a petition to set aside shall preclude a
In a petition to vacate an award or in petition to vacate party from raising grounds to resist enforcement of the
an award in opposition to a petition to confirm the award.
award, the petitioner may simultaneously apply with
the Court to refer the case back to the same arbitral Rule 12.3. Venue. - A petition to recognize and enforce
tribunal for the purpose of making a new or revised or set aside an arbitral award may, at the option of the
award or to direct a new hearing, or in the appropriate petitioner, be filed with the Regional Trial Court: (a)
case, order the new hearing before a new arbitral where arbitration proceedings were conducted; (b)
tribunal, the members of which shall be chosen in the where any of the assets to be attached or levied upon is
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 73

located; (c) where the act to be enjoined will be or is that (a) the other party to arbitration had knowingly
being performed; (d) where any of the parties to entered into a submission or agreement with such
arbitration resides or has its place of business; or (e) in minor or incompetent, or (b) the submission to
the National Capital Judicial Region. arbitration was made by a guardian or guardian ad
litem who was not authorized to do so by a competent
Rule 12.4. Grounds to set aside or resist enforcement. - court.
The court may set aside or refuse the enforcement of
the arbitral award only if: Rule 12.5. Exclusive recourse against arbitral award. -
Recourse to a court against an arbitral award shall be
a. The party making the application furnishes proof made only through a petition to set aside the arbitral
that: award and on grounds prescribed by the law that
governs international commercial arbitration. Any
(i). A party to the arbitration agreement was under other recourse from the arbitral award, such as by
some incapacity, or the said agreement is not valid appeal or petition for review or petition for certiorari
under the law to which the parties have subjected it or, or otherwise, shall be dismissed by the court.
failing any indication thereof, under Philippine law; or
Rule 12.6. Form. - The application to recognize and
(ii). The party making the application to set aside or enforce or set aside an arbitral award, whether made
resist enforcement was not given proper notice of the through a petition to recognize and enforce or to set
appointment of an arbitrator or of the arbitral aside or as a petition to set aside the award in
proceedings or was otherwise unable to present his opposition thereto, or through a petition to set aside or
case; or petition to recognize and enforce in opposition thereto,
shall be verified by a person who has personal
(iii). The award deals with a dispute not contemplated knowledge of the facts stated therein.
by or not falling within the terms of the submission to
arbitration, or contains decisions on matters beyond When a petition to recognize and enforce an arbitral
the scope of the submission to arbitration; provided award is pending, the application to set it aside, if not
that, if the decisions on matters submitted to yet time-barred, shall be made through a petition to set
arbitration can be separated from those not so aside the same award in the same proceedings.
submitted, only that part of the award which contains
decisions on matters not submitted to arbitration may When a timely petition to set aside an arbitral award is
be set aside or only that part of the award which filed, the opposing party may file a petition for
contains decisions on matters submitted to arbitration recognition and enforcement of the same award in
may be enforced; or opposition thereto.

(iv). The composition of the arbitral tribunal or the Rule 12.7. Contents of petition. - (A) Petition to
arbitral procedure was not in accordance with the recognize and enforce. - The petition to recognize and
agreement of the parties, unless such agreement was in enforce or petition to set aside in opposition thereto, or
conflict with a provision of Philippine law from which petition to set aside or petition to recognize and
the parties cannot derogate, or, failing such agreement, enforce in opposition thereto, shall state the following:
was not in accordance with Philippine law;
a. The addresses of record, or any change thereof, of
b. The court finds that: the parties to arbitration;

(i). The subject-matter of the dispute is not capable of b. A statement that the arbitration agreement or
settlement by arbitration under the law of the submission exists;
Philippines; or
c. The names of the arbitrators and proof of their
(ii). The recognition or enforcement of the award appointment;
would be contrary to public policy.
d. A statement that an arbitral award was issued and
In deciding the petition, the Court shall disregard any when the petitioner received it; and
other ground to set aside or enforce the arbitral award
other than those enumerated above. e. The relief sought.

The petition to set-aside or a pleading resisting the Apart from other submissions, the petitioner shall
enforcement of an arbitral award on the ground that a attach to the petition the following:
party was a minor or an incompetent shall be filed only
on behalf of the minor or incompetent and shall allege a. An authentic copy of the arbitration agreement;
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 74

receipt of the order, sufficiently discussing the legal
b. An authentic copy of the arbitral award; issues and the legal basis for the relief prayed for by
each of them.
c. A verification and certification against forum
shopping executed by the applicant in accordance with If the court finds from the petition or petition in
Sections 4 and 5 of Rule 7 of the Rules of Court; and opposition thereto that there are issues of fact relating
to the ground(s) relied upon for the court to set aside,
d. An authentic copy or authentic copies of the it shall require the parties within a period of not more
appointment of an arbitral tribunal. than fifteen (15) days from receipt of the order
simultaneously to submit the affidavits of all of their
(B) Petition to set aside. - The petition to set aside or witnesses and reply affidavits within ten (10) days
petition to set aside in opposition to a petition to from receipt of the affidavits to be replied to. There
recognize and enforce an arbitral award in shall be attached to the affidavits or reply affidavits, all
international commercial arbitration shall have the documents relied upon in support of the statements of
same contents as a petition to recognize and enforce or fact in such affidavits or reply affidavits.
petition to recognize and enforce in opposition to a
petition to set aside an arbitral award. In addition, the Rule 12.10. Hearing. - If on the basis of the petition,
said petitions should state the grounds relied upon to the opposition, the affidavits and reply affidavits of the
set it aside. parties, the court finds that there is a need to conduct
an oral hearing, the court shall set the case for hearing.
Further, if the ground of the petition to set aside is that This case shall have preference over other cases before
the petitioner is a minor or found incompetent by a the court, except criminal cases. During the hearing,
court, there shall be attached to the petition certified the affidavits of witnesses shall take the place of their
copies of documents showing such fact. In addition, direct testimonies and they shall immediately be
the petitioner shall show that even if the submission or subject to cross-examination thereon. The court shall
arbitration agreement was entered into by a guardian have full control over the proceedings in order to
or guardian ad litem, the latter was not authorized by a ensure that the case is heard without undue delay.
competent court to sign such the submission or
arbitration agreement. Rule 12.11. Suspension of proceedings to set aside. -
The court when asked to set aside an arbitral award
In either case, if another court was previously may, where appropriate and upon request by a party,
requested to resolve and/or has resolved, on appeal, suspend the proceedings for a period of time
the arbitral tribunals preliminary determination in determined by it to give the arbitral tribunal an
favor of its own jurisdiction, the petitioner shall opportunity to resume the arbitral proceedings or to
apprise the court before which the petition to recognize take such other action as in the arbitral tribunals
and enforce or set aside is pending of the status of the opinion will eliminate the grounds for setting aside.
appeal or its resolution. The court, in referring the case back to the arbitral
tribunal may not direct it to revise its award in a
Rule 12.8. Notice. - Upon finding that the petition filed particular way, or to revise its findings of fact or
under this Rule is sufficient both in form and in conclusions of law or otherwise encroach upon the
substance, the court shall cause notice and a copy of independence of an arbitral tribunal in the making of a
the petition to be delivered to the respondent directing final award.
him to file an opposition thereto within fifteen (15)
days from receipt of the petition. In lieu of an The court when asked to set aside an arbitral award
opposition, the respondent may file a petition to set may also, when the preliminary ruling of an arbitral
aside in opposition to a petition to recognize and tribunal affirming its jurisdiction to act on the matter
enforce, or a petition to recognize and enforce in before it had been appealed by the party aggrieved by
opposition to a petition to set aside. such preliminary ruling to the court, suspend the
proceedings to set aside to await the ruling of the court
The petitioner may within fifteen (15) days from on such pending appeal or, in the alternative,
receipt of the petition to set aside in opposition to a consolidate the proceedings to set aside with the
petition to recognize and enforce, or from receipt of earlier appeal.
the petition to recognize and enforce in opposition to a
petition to set aside, file a reply. Rule 12.12. Presumption in favor of confirmation. - It is
presumed that an arbitral award was made and
Rule 12.9. Submission of documents. - If the court released in due course and is subject to enforcement by
finds that the issue between the parties is mainly one the court, unless the adverse party is able to establish a
of law, the parties may be required to submit briefs of ground for setting aside or not enforcing an arbitral
legal arguments, not more than fifteen (15) days from award.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 75

governed by the 1958 New York Convention on the
Rule 12.13. Judgment of the court. - Unless a ground to Recognition and Enforcement of Foreign Arbitral
set aside an arbitral award under Rule 12.4 above is Awards (the "New York Convention") and this Rule.
fully established, the court shall dismiss the petition. The court may, upon grounds of comity and
If, in the same proceedings, there is a petition to reciprocity, recognize and enforce a foreign arbitral
recognize and enforce the arbitral award filed in award made in a country that is not a signatory to the
opposition to the petition to set aside, the court shall New York Convention as if it were a Convention
recognize and enforce the award. Award.

In resolving the petition or petition in opposition A Philippine court shall not set aside a foreign arbitral
thereto in accordance with the Special ADR Rules, the award but may refuse it recognition and enforcement
court shall either set aside or enforce the arbitral on any or all of the following grounds:
award. The court shall not disturb the arbitral
tribunals determination of facts and/or interpretation a. The party making the application to refuse
of law. recognition and enforcement of the award furnishes
proof that:
Rule 12.14. Costs. - Unless otherwise agreed upon by
the parties in writing, at the time the case is submitted (i). A party to the arbitration agreement was under
to the court for decision, the party praying for some incapacity; or the said agreement is not valid
recognition and enforcement or setting aside of an under the law to which the parties have subjected it or,
arbitral award shall submit a statement under oath failing any indication thereof, under the law of the
confirming the costs he has incurred only in the country where the award was made; or
proceedings for such recognition and enforcement or
setting aside. The costs shall include the attorneys fees (ii). The party making the application was not given
the party has paid or is committed to pay to his counsel proper notice of the appointment of an arbitrator or of
of record. the arbitral proceedings or was otherwise unable to
present his case; or
The prevailing party shall be entitled to an award of
costs, which shall include reasonable attorneys fees of (iii). The award deals with a dispute not contemplated
the prevailing party against the unsuccessful party. The by or not falling within the terms of the submission to
court shall determine the reasonableness of the claim arbitration, or contains decisions on matters beyond
for attorneys fees. the scope of the submission to arbitration; provided
that, if the decisions on matters submitted to
RULE 13: RECOGNITION AND ENFORCEMENT OF arbitration can be separated from those not so
A FOREIGN ARBITRAL AWARD submitted, only that part of the award which contains
decisions on matters not submitted to arbitration may
Rule 13.1. Who may request recognition and be set aside; or
enforcement. - Any party to a foreign arbitration may
petition the court to recognize and enforce a foreign (iv). The composition of the arbitral tribunal or the
arbitral award. arbitral procedure was not in accordance with the
agreement of the parties or, failing such agreement,
Rule 13.2. When to petition. - At any time after receipt was not in accordance with the law of the country
of a foreign arbitral award, any party to arbitration where arbitration took place; or
may petition the proper Regional Trial Court to
recognize and enforce such award. (v). The award has not yet become binding on the
parties or has been set aside or suspended by a court of
Rule 13.3. Venue. - The petition to recognize and the country in which that award was made; or
enforce a foreign arbitral award shall be filed, at the
option of the petitioner, with the Regional Trial Court b. The court finds that:
(a) where the assets to be attached or levied upon is
located, (b) where the act to be enjoined is being (i). The subject-matter of the dispute is not capable of
performed, (c) in the principal place of business in the settlement or resolution by arbitration under
Philippines of any of the parties, (d) if any of the Philippine law; or
parties is an individual, where any of those individuals
resides, or (e) in the National Capital Judicial Region. (ii). The recognition or enforcement of the award
would be contrary to public policy.
Rule 13.4. Governing law and grounds to refuse
recognition and enforcement. - The recognition and
enforcement of a foreign arbitral award shall be
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 76

The court shall disregard any ground for opposing the request. There shall be attached to the affidavits or
recognition and enforcement of a foreign arbitral reply affidavits all documents relied upon in support of
award other than those enumerated above. the statements of fact in such affidavits or reply
affidavits.
Rule 13.5. Contents of petition. - The petition shall
state the following: Rule 13.9. Hearing. - The court shall set the case for
hearing if on the basis of the foregoing submissions
a. The addresses of the parties to arbitration; there is a need to do so. The court shall give due
priority to hearings on petitions under this Rule.
b. In the absence of any indication in the award, the During the hearing, the affidavits of witnesses shall
country where the arbitral award was made and take the place of their direct testimonies and they shall
whether such country is a signatory to the New York immediately be subject to cross-examination. The
Convention; and court shall have full control over the proceedings in
order to ensure that the case is heard without undue
c. The relief sought. delay.

Apart from other submissions, the petition shall have Rule 13.10. Adjournment/deferment of decision on
attached to it the following: enforcement of award. - The court before which a
petition to recognize and enforce a foreign arbitral
a. An authentic copy of the arbitration agreement; and award is pending, may adjourn or defer rendering a
decision thereon if, in the meantime, an application for
b. An authentic copy of the arbitral award. the setting aside or suspension of the award has been
made with a competent authority in the country where
If the foreign arbitral award or agreement to arbitrate the award was made. Upon application of the
or submission is not made in English, the petitioner petitioner, the court may also require the other party to
shall also attach to the petition a translation of these give suitable security.
documents into English. The translation shall be
certified by an official or sworn translator or by a Rule 13.11. Court action. - It is presumed that a foreign
diplomatic or consular agent. arbitral award was made and released in due course of
arbitration and is subject to enforcement by the court.
Rule 13.6. Notice and opposition. - Upon finding that
the petition filed under this Rule is sufficient both in The court shall recognize and enforce a foreign arbitral
form and in substance, the court shall cause notice and award unless a ground to refuse recognition or
a copy of the petition to be delivered to the respondent enforcement of the foreign arbitral award under this
allowing him to file an opposition thereto within thirty rule is fully established.
(30) days from receipt of the notice and petition.
The decision of the court recognizing and enforcing a
Rule 13.7. Opposition. - The opposition shall be foreign arbitral award is immediately executory.
verified by a person who has personal knowledge of the
facts stated therein. In resolving the petition for recognition and
enforcement of a foreign arbitral award in accordance
Rule 13.8. Submissions. - If the court finds that the with these Special ADR Rules, the court shall either [a]
issue between the parties is mainly one of law, the recognize and/or enforce or [b] refuse to recognize and
parties may be required to submit briefs of legal enforce the arbitral award. The court shall not disturb
arguments, not more than thirty (30) days from receipt the arbitral tribunals determination of facts and/or
of the order, sufficiently discussing the legal issues and interpretation of law.
the legal bases for the relief prayed for by each other.
Rule 13.12. Recognition and enforcement of non-
If, from a review of the petition or opposition, there are convention award. - The court shall, only upon
issues of fact relating to the ground/s relied upon for grounds provided by these Special ADR Rules,
the court to refuse enforcement, the court shall, motu recognize and enforce a foreign arbitral award made in
proprio or upon request of any party, require the a country not a signatory to the New York Convention
parties to simultaneously submit the affidavits of all of when such country extends comity and reciprocity to
their witnesses within a period of not less than fifteen awards made in the Philippines. If that country does
(15) days nor more than thirty (30) days from receipt not extend comity and reciprocity to awards made in
of the order. The court may, upon the request of any the Philippines, the court may nevertheless treat such
party, allow the submission of reply affidavits within a award as a foreign judgment enforceable as such under
period of not less than fifteen (15) days nor more than Rule 39, Section 48, of the Rules of Court.
thirty (30) days from receipt of the order granting said
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 77

PART III
PROVISIONS SPECIFIC TO MEDIATION (ii). The ultimate facts that would show that the
adverse party has defaulted to perform its obligation
RULE 14: GENERAL PROVISIONS under said agreement; and

Rule 14.1. Application of the rules on arbitration. - c. Have attached to it the following:
Whenever applicable and appropriate, the pertinent
rules on arbitration shall be applied in proceedings (i). An authentic copy of the mediated settlement
before the court relative to a dispute subject to agreement; and
mediation.
(ii). Certificate of Deposit showing that the mediated
RULE 15: DEPOSIT AND ENFORCEMENT OF settlement agreement was deposited with the Clerk of
MEDIATED SETTLEMENT AGREEMENTS Court.

Rule 15.1. Who makes a deposit. - Any party to a Rule 15.7. Opposition. - The adverse party may file an
mediation that is not court-annexed may deposit with opposition, within fifteen (15) days from receipt of
the court the written settlement agreement, which notice or service of the petition, by submitting written
resulted from that mediation. proof of compliance with the mediated settlement
agreement or such other affirmative or negative
Rule 15.2. When deposit is made. - At any time after an defenses it may have.
agreement is reached, the written settlement
agreement may be deposited. Rule 15.8. Court action. - After a summary hearing, if
the court finds that the agreement is a valid mediated
Rule 15.3. Venue. - The written settlement agreement settlement agreement, that there is no merit in any of
may be jointly deposited by the parties or deposited by the affirmative or negative defenses raised, and the
one party with prior notice to the other party/ies with respondent has breached that agreement, in whole or
the Clerk of Court of the Regional Trial Court (a) where in part, the court shall order the enforcement thereof;
the principal place of business in the Philippines of any otherwise, it shall dismiss the petition.
of the parties is located; (b) if any of the parties is an
individual, where any of those individuals resides; or PART IV
(c) in the National Capital Judicial Region. PROVISIONS SPECIFIC TO CONSTRUCTION
ARBITRATION
Rule 15.4. Registry Book. - The Clerk of Court of each
Regional Trial Court shall keep a Registry Book that RULE 16: GENERAL PROVISIONS
shall chronologically list or enroll all the mediated
settlement agreements/settlement awards that are Rule 16.1. Application of the rules on arbitration. -
deposited with the court as well as the names and Whenever applicable and appropriate, the rules on
address of the parties thereto and the date of arbitration shall be applied in proceedings before the
enrollment and shall issue a Certificate of Deposit to court relative to a dispute subject to construction
the party that made the deposit. arbitration.

Rule 15.5. Enforcement of mediated settlement RULE 17: REFERRAL TO CIAC


agreement. - Any of the parties to a mediated
settlement agreement, which was deposited with the Rule 17.1. Dismissal of action. - A Regional Trial Court
Clerk of Court of the Regional Trial Court, may, upon before which a construction dispute is filed shall, upon
breach thereof, file a verified petition with the same becoming aware that the parties have entered into an
court to enforce said agreement. arbitration agreement, motu proprio or upon motion
made not later than the pre-trial, dismiss the case and
Rule 15.6. Contents of petition. - The verified petition refer the parties to arbitration to be conducted by the
shall: Construction Industry Arbitration Commission
(CIAC), unless all parties to arbitration, assisted by
a. Name and designate, as petitioner or respondent, all their respective counsel, submit to the court a written
parties to the mediated settlement agreement and agreement making the court, rather than the CIAC, the
those who may be affected by it; body that would exclusively resolve the dispute.

b. State the following: Rule 17.2. Form and contents of motion. - The request
for dismissal of the civil action and referral to
(i). The addresses of the petitioner and respondents; arbitration shall be through a verified motion that shall
and (a) contain a statement showing that the dispute is a
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 78

construction dispute; and (b) be accompanied by proof b. Not all of the parties to the civil action are bound by
of the existence of the arbitration agreement. the arbitration agreement and referral to arbitration
would result in multiplicity of suits;
If the arbitration agreement or other document
evidencing the existence of that agreement is already c. The issues raised in the civil action could be speedily
part of the record, those documents need not be and efficiently resolved in its entirety by the Court
submitted to the court provided that the movant has rather than in arbitration;
cited in the motion particular references to the records
where those documents may be found. d. Referral to arbitration does not appear to be the
most prudent action; or
The motion shall also contain a notice of hearing
addressed to all parties and shall specify the date and e. Dismissal of the civil action would prejudice the
time when the motion will be heard, which must not be rights of the parties to the civil action who are not
later than fifteen (15) days after the filing of the bound by the arbitration agreement.
motion. The movant shall ensure receipt by all parties
of the motion at least three days before the date of the The court may, however, issue an order directing the
hearing. inclusion in arbitration of those parties who are bound
by the arbitration agreement directly or by reference
Rule 17.3. Opposition. - Upon receipt of the motion to thereto pursuant to Section 34 of Republic Act No.
refer the dispute to arbitration by CIAC, the other 9285.
party may file an opposition to the motion on or before
the day such motion is to be heard. The opposition Furthermore, the court shall issue an order directing
shall clearly set forth the reasons why the court should the case to proceed with respect to the parties not
not dismiss the case. bound by the arbitration agreement.

Rule 17.4. Hearing. - The court shall hear the motion Rule 17.8. Referral - If the parties manifest that they
only once and for the purpose of clarifying relevant have agreed to submit all or part of their dispute
factual and legal issues. pending with the court to arbitration by CIAC, the
court shall refer them to CIAC for arbitration.
Rule 17.5. Court action. - If the other parties fail to file
their opposition on or before the day of the hearing, PART V
the court shall motu proprio resolve the motion only PROVISIONS SPECIFIC TO OTHER FORMS OF ADR
on the basis of the facts alleged in the motion.
RULE 18: GENERAL PROVISIONS
After hearing, the court shall dismiss the civil action
and refer the parties to arbitration if it finds, based on Rule 18.1. Applicability of rules to other forms of ADR.
the pleadings and supporting documents submitted by - This rule governs the procedure for matters brought
the parties, that there is a valid and enforceable before the court involving the following forms of ADR:
arbitration agreement involving a construction
dispute. Otherwise, the court shall proceed to hear the a. Early neutral evaluation;
case.
b. Neutral evaluation;
All doubts shall be resolved in favor of the existence of
a construction dispute and the arbitration agreement. c. Mini-trial;

Rule 17.6. Referral immediately executory. - An order d. Mediation-arbitration;


dismissing the case and referring the dispute to
arbitration by CIAC shall be immediately executory. e. A combination thereof; or

Rule 17.7. Multiple actions and parties. - The court f. Any other ADR form.
shall not decline to dismiss the civil action and make a
referral to arbitration by CIAC for any of the following Rule 18.2. Applicability of the rules on mediation. - If
reasons: the other ADR form/process is more akin to mediation
(i.e., the neutral third party merely assists the parties
a. Not all of the disputes subject of the civil action may in reaching a voluntary agreement), the herein rules on
be referred to arbitration; mediation shall apply.

Rule 18.3. Applicability of rules on arbitration.-If the


other ADR form/process is more akin to arbitration
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 79

(i.e., the neutral third party has the power to make a j. Setting aside an international commercial arbitral
binding resolution of the dispute), the herein rules on award;
arbitration shall apply.
k. Dismissing the petition to set aside an international
Rule 18.4. Referral. - If a dispute is already before a commercial arbitral award, even if the court does not
court, either party may before and during pre-trial, file recognize and/or enforce the same;
a motion for the court to refer the parties to other ADR
forms/processes. At any time during court l. Recognizing and/or enforcing, or dismissing a
proceedings, even after pre-trial, the parties may petition to recognize and/or enforce an international
jointly move for suspension of the action pursuant to commercial arbitral award;
Article 2030 of the Civil Code of the Philippines where
the possibility of compromise is shown. m. Declining a request for assistance in taking
evidence;
Rule 18.5. Submission of settlement agreement. -
Either party may submit to the court, before which the n. Adjourning or deferring a ruling on a petition to set
case is pending, any settlement agreement following a aside, recognize and/or enforce an international
neutral or an early neutral evaluation, mini-trial or commercial arbitral award;
mediation-arbitration.
o. Recognizing and/or enforcing a foreign arbitral
PART VI award, or refusing recognition and/or enforcement of
MOTION FOR RECONSIDERATION, APPEAL AND the same; and
CERTIORARI
p. Granting or dismissing a petition to enforce a
RULE 19: MOTION FOR RECONSIDERATION, deposited mediated settlement agreement.
APPEAL AND CERTIORARI
No motion for reconsideration shall be allowed from
A. MOTION FOR RECONSIDERATION the following rulings of the Regional Trial Court:

Rule 19.1. Motion for reconsideration, when allowed. - a. A prima facie determination upholding the
A party may ask the Regional Trial to reconsider its existence, validity or enforceability of an arbitration
ruling on the following: agreement pursuant to Rule 3.1 (A);

a. That the arbitration agreement is inexistent, invalid b. An order referring the dispute to arbitration;
or unenforceable pursuant to Rule 3.10 (B);
c. An order appointing an arbitrator;
b. Upholding or reversing the arbitral tribunals
jurisdiction pursuant to Rule 3.19; d. Any ruling on the challenge to the appointment of an
arbitrator;
c. Denying a request to refer the parties to arbitration;
e. Any order resolving the issue of the termination of
d. Granting or denying a party an interim measure of the mandate of an arbitrator; and
protection;
f. An order granting assistance in taking evidence.
e. Denying a petition for the appointment of an
arbitrator; Rule 19.2. When to move for reconsideration. - A
motion for reconsideration may be filed with the
f. Refusing to grant assistance in taking evidence; Regional Trial Court within a non-extendible period of
fifteen (15) days from receipt of the questioned ruling
g. Enjoining or refusing to enjoin a person from or order.
divulging confidential information;
Rule 19.3. Contents and notice. - The motion shall be
h. Confirming, vacating or correcting a domestic made in writing stating the ground or grounds therefor
arbitral award; and shall be filed with the court and served upon the
other party or parties.
i. Suspending the proceedings to set aside an
international commercial arbitral award and referring Rule 19.4. Opposition or comment. - Upon receipt of
the case back to the arbitral tribunal; the motion for reconsideration, the other party or
parties shall have a non-extendible period of fifteen
(15) days to file his opposition or comment.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 80

and law, as the court cannot substitute its judgment for
Rule 19.5. Resolution of motion. - A motion for that of the arbitral tribunal.
reconsideration shall be resolved within thirty (30)
days from receipt of the opposition or comment or Rule 19.11. Rule on judicial review of foreign arbitral
upon the expiration of the period to file such award. - The court can deny recognition and
opposition or comment. enforcement of a foreign arbitral award only upon the
grounds provided in Article V of the New York
Rule 19.6. No second motion for reconsideration. - No Convention, but shall have no power to vacate or set
party shall be allowed a second motion for aside a foreign arbitral award.
reconsideration.
C. APPEALS TO THE COURT OF APPEALS
B. GENERAL PROVISIONS ON APPEAL AND
CERTIORARI Rule 19.12. Appeal to the Court of Appeals. - An appeal
to the Court of Appeals through a petition for review
Rule 19.7. No appeal or certiorari on the merits of an under this Special Rule shall only be allowed from the
arbitral award. - An agreement to refer a dispute to following final orders of the Regional Trial Court:
arbitration shall mean that the arbitral award shall be
final and binding. Consequently, a party to an a. Granting or denying an interim measure of
arbitration is precluded from filing an appeal or a protection;
petition for certiorari questioning the merits of an
arbitral award. b. Denying a petition for appointment of an arbitrator;

Rule 19.8. Subject matter and governing rules. - The c. Denying a petition for assistance in taking evidence;
remedy of an appeal through a petition for review or
the remedy of a special civil action of certiorari from a d. Enjoining or refusing to enjoin a person from
decision of the Regional Trial Court made under the divulging confidential information;
Special ADR Rules shall be allowed in the instances,
and instituted only in the manner, provided under this e. Confirming, vacating or correcting/modifying a
Rule. domestic arbitral award;

Rule 19.9. Prohibited alternative remedies. - Where the f. Setting aside an international commercial arbitration
remedies of appeal and certiorari are specifically made award;
available to a party under the Special ADR Rules,
recourse to one remedy shall preclude recourse to the g. Dismissing the petition to set aside an international
other. commercial arbitration award even if the court does
not decide to recognize or enforce such award;
Rule 19.10. Rule on judicial review on arbitration in the
Philippines. - As a general rule, the court can only h. Recognizing and/or enforcing an international
vacate or set aside the decision of an arbitral tribunal commercial arbitration award;
upon a clear showing that the award suffers from any
of the infirmities or grounds for vacating an arbitral i. Dismissing a petition to enforce an international
award under Section 24 of Republic Act No. 876 or commercial arbitration award;
under Rule 34 of the Model Law in a domestic
arbitration, or for setting aside an award in an j. Recognizing and/or enforcing a foreign arbitral
international arbitration under Article 34 of the Model award;
Law, or for such other grounds provided under these
Special Rules. k. Refusing recognition and/or enforcement of a
foreign arbitral award;
If the Regional Trial Court is asked to set aside an
arbitral award in a domestic or international l. Granting or dismissing a petition to enforce a
arbitration on any ground other than those provided in deposited mediated settlement agreement; and
the Special ADR Rules, the court shall entertain such
ground for the setting aside or non-recognition of the m. Reversing the ruling of the arbitral tribunal
arbitral award only if the same amounts to a violation upholding its jurisdiction.
of public policy.
Rule 19.13. Where to appeal. - An appeal under this
The court shall not set aside or vacate the award of the Rule shall be taken to the Court of Appeals within the
arbitral tribunal merely on the ground that the arbitral period and in the manner herein provided.
tribunal committed errors of fact, or of law, or of fact
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 81

Rule 19.14. When to appeal. - The petition for review Rule 19.19. Contents of Comment. - The comment shall
shall be filed within fifteen (15) days from notice of the be filed within ten (10) days from notice in seven (7)
decision of the Regional Trial Court or the denial of the legible copies and accompanied by clearly legible
petitioners motion for reconsideration. certified true copies of such material portions of the
record referred to therein together with other
Rule 19.15. How appeal taken. - Appeal shall be taken supporting papers. The comment shall (a) point out
by filing a verified petition for review in seven (7) insufficiencies or inaccuracies in petitioners statement
legible copies with the Court of Appeals, with proof of of facts and issues, and (b) state the reasons why the
service of a copy thereof on the adverse party and on petition should be denied or dismissed. A copy thereof
the Regional Trial Court. The original copy of the shall be served on the petitioner, and proof of such
petition intended for the Court of Appeals shall be service shall be filed with the Court of Appeals.
marked original by the petitioner.
Rule 19.20. Due course. - If upon the filing of a
Upon the filing of the petition and unless otherwise comment or such other pleading or documents as may
prescribed by the Court of Appeals, the petitioner shall be required or allowed by the Court of Appeals or upon
pay to the clerk of court of the Court of Appeals the expiration of the period for the filing thereof, and
docketing fees and other lawful fees of P3,500.00 and on the basis of the petition or the records, the Court of
deposit the sum of P500.00 for costs. Appeals finds prima facie that the Regional Trial Court
has committed an error that would warrant reversal or
Exemption from payment of docket and other lawful modification of the judgment, final order, or resolution
fees and the deposit for costs may be granted by the sought to be reviewed, it may give due course to the
Court of Appeals upon a verified motion setting forth petition; otherwise, it shall dismiss the same.
valid grounds therefor. If the Court of Appeals denies
the motion, the petitioner shall pay the docketing and Rule 19.21. Transmittal of records. - Within fifteen (15)
other lawful fees and deposit for costs within fifteen days from notice that the petition has been given due
days from the notice of the denial. course, the Court of Appeals may require the court or
agency concerned to transmit the original or a legible
Rule 19.16. Contents of the Petition. - The petition for certified true copy of the entire record of the
review shall (a) state the full names of the parties to proceeding under review. The record to be transmitted
the case, without impleading the court or agencies may be abridged by agreement of all parties to the
either as petitioners or respondent, (b) contain a proceeding. The Court of Appeals may require or
concise statement of the facts and issues involved and permit subsequent correction of or addition to the
the grounds relied upon for the review, (c) be record.
accompanied by a clearly legible duplicate original or a
certified true copy of the decision or resolution of the Rule 19.22. Effect of appeal. - The appeal shall not stay
Regional Trial Court appealed from, together with the award, judgment, final order or resolution sought
certified true copies of such material portions of the to be reviewed unless the Court of Appeals directs
record referred to therein and other supporting papers, otherwise upon such terms as it may deem just.
and (d) contain a sworn certification against forum
shopping as provided in the Rules of Court. The Rule 19.23. Submission for decision. - If the petition is
petition shall state the specific material dates showing given due course, the Court of Appeals may set the case
that it was filed within the period fixed herein. for oral argument or require the parties to submit
memoranda within a period of fifteen (15) days from
Rule 19.17. Effect of failure to comply with notice. The case shall be deemed submitted for
requirements. - The court shall dismiss the petition if it decision upon the filing of the last pleading or
fails to comply with the foregoing requirements memorandum required by the Court of Appeals.
regarding the payment of the docket and other lawful
fees, the deposit for costs, proof of service of the The Court of Appeals shall render judgment within
petition, the contents and the documents, which sixty (60) days from the time the case is submitted for
should accompany the petition. decision.

Rule 19.18. Action on the petition. - The Court of Rule 19.24. Subject of appeal restricted in certain
Appeals may require the respondent to file a comment instance. - If the decision of the Regional Trial Court
on the petition, not a motion to dismiss, within ten refusing to recognize and/or enforce, vacating and/or
(10) days from notice, or dismiss the petition if it finds, setting aside an arbitral award is premised on a finding
upon consideration of the grounds alleged and the of fact, the Court of Appeals may inquire only into such
legal briefs submitted by the parties, that the petition fact to determine the existence or non-existence of the
does not appear to be prima facie meritorious. specific ground under the arbitration laws of the
Philippines relied upon by the Regional Trial Court to
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 82

refuse to recognize and/or enforce, vacate and/or set i. Adjourning or deferring a ruling on whether to set
aside an award. Any such inquiry into a question of aside, recognize and or enforce an international
fact shall not be resorted to for the purpose of commercial arbitral award;
substituting the courts judgment for that of the
arbitral tribunal as regards the latters ruling on the j. Allowing a party to enforce a foreign arbitral award
merits of the controversy. pending appeal; and

Rule 19.25. Party appealing decision of court k. Denying a petition for assistance in taking evidence.
confirming arbitral award required to post bond. - The
Court of Appeals shall within fifteen (15) days from Rule 19.27. Form. - The petition shall be accompanied
receipt of the petition require the party appealing from by a certified true copy of the questioned judgment,
the decision or a final order of the Regional Trial order or resolution of the Regional Trial Court, copies
Court, either confirming or enforcing an arbitral of all pleadings and documents relevant and pertinent
award, or denying a petition to set aside or vacate the thereto, and a sworn certification of non-forum
arbitral award to post a bond executed in favor of the shopping as provided in the Rules of Court.
prevailing party equal to the amount of the award.
Upon the filing of the petition and unless otherwise
Failure of the petitioner to post such bond shall be a prescribed by the Court of Appeals, the petitioner shall
ground for the Court of Appeals to dismiss the petition. pay to the clerk of court of the Court of Appeals
docketing fees and other lawful fees of P3,500.00 and
D. SPECIAL CIVIL ACTION FOR CERTIORARI deposit the sum of P500.00 for costs. Exemption from
payment of docket and other lawful fees and the
Rule 19.26. Certiorari to the Court of Appeals. - When deposit for costs may be granted by the Court of
the Regional Trial Court, in making a ruling under the Appeals upon a verified motion setting forth valid
Special ADR Rules, has acted without or in excess of its grounds therefor. If the Court of Appeals denies the
jurisdiction, or with grave abuse of discretion motion, the petitioner shall pay the docketing and
amounting to lack or excess of jurisdiction, and there is other lawful fees and deposit for costs within fifteen
no appeal or any plain, speedy, and adequate remedy days from the notice of the denial.
in the ordinary course of law, a party may file a special
civil action for certiorari to annul or set aside a ruling Rule 19.28. When to file petition. - The petition must
of the Regional Trial Court. be filed with the Court of Appeals within fifteen (15)
days from notice of the judgment, order or resolution
A special civil action for certiorari may be filed against sought to be annulled or set aside. No extension of
the following orders of the court. time to file the petition shall be allowed.

a. Holding that the arbitration agreement is inexistent, Rule 19.29. Arbitral tribunal a nominal party in the
invalid or unenforceable; petition. - The arbitral tribunal shall only be a nominal
party in the petition for certiorari. As nominal party,
b. Reversing the arbitral tribunals preliminary the arbitral tribunal shall not be required to submit
determination upholding its jurisdiction; any pleadings or written submissions to the court. The
arbitral tribunal or an arbitrator may, however, submit
c. Denying the request to refer the dispute to such pleadings or written submissions if the same
arbitration; serves the interest of justice.

d. Granting or refusing an interim relief; In petitions relating to the recognition and


enforcement of a foreign arbitral award, the arbitral
e. Denying a petition for the appointment of an tribunal shall not be included even as a nominal party.
arbitrator; However, the tribunal may be notified of the
proceedings and furnished with court processes.
f. Confirming, vacating or correcting a domestic
arbitral award; Rule 19.30. Court to dismiss petition. - The court shall
dismiss the petition if it fails to comply with Rules
g. Suspending the proceedings to set aside an 19.27 and 19.28 above, or upon consideration of the
international commercial arbitral award and referring ground alleged and the legal briefs submitted by the
the case back to the arbitral tribunal; parties, the petition does not appear to be prima facie
meritorious.
h. Allowing a party to enforce an international
commercial arbitral award pending appeal; Rule 19.31. Order to comment. - If the petition is
sufficient in form and substance to justify such
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 83

process, the Court of Appeals shall immediately issue b. Erred in upholding a final order or decision despite
an order requiring the respondent or respondents to the lack of jurisdiction of the court that rendered such
comment on the petition within a non-extendible final order or decision;
period of fifteen (15) days from receipt of a copy
thereof. Such order shall be served on the respondents c. Failed to apply any provision, principle, policy or
in such manner as the court may direct, together with a rule contained in these Special ADR Rules resulting in
copy of the petition and any annexes thereto. substantial prejudice to the aggrieved party; and

Rule 19.32. Arbitration may continue despite petition d. Committed an error so egregious and harmful to a
for certiorari. - A petition for certiorari to the court party as to amount to an undeniable excess of
from the action of the appointing authority or the jurisdiction.
arbitral tribunal allowed under this Rule shall not
prevent the arbitral tribunal from continuing the The mere fact that the petitioner disagrees with the
proceedings and rendering its award. Should the Court of Appeals determination of questions of fact, of
arbitral tribunal continue with the proceedings, the law or both questions of fact and law, shall not warrant
arbitral proceedings and any award rendered therein the exercise of the Supreme Courts discretionary
will be subject to the final outcome of the pending power. The error imputed to the Court of Appeals must
petition for certiorari. be grounded upon any of the above prescribed grounds
for review or be closely analogous thereto.
Rule 19.33. Prohibition against injunctions. - The
Court of Appeals shall not, during the pendency of the A mere general allegation that the Court of Appeals has
proceedings before it, prohibit or enjoin the committed serious and substantial error or that it has
commencement of arbitration, the constitution of the acted with grave abuse of discretion resulting in
arbitral tribunal, or the continuation of arbitration. substantial prejudice to the petitioner without
indicating with specificity the nature of such error or
Rule 19.34. Proceedings after comment is filed. - After abuse of discretion and the serious prejudice suffered
the comment is filed, or the time for the filing thereof by the petitioner on account thereof, shall constitute
has expired, the court shall render judgment granting sufficient ground for the Supreme Court to dismiss
the relief prayed for or to which the petitioner is outright the petition.
entitled, or denying the same, within a non-extendible
period of fifteen (15) days. Rule 19.37. Filing of petition with Supreme Court. - A
party desiring to appeal by certiorari from a judgment
Rule 19.35. Service and enforcement of order or or final order or resolution of the Court of Appeals
judgment. - A certified copy of the judgment rendered issued pursuant to these Special ADR Rules may file
in accordance with the last preceding section shall be with the Supreme Court a verified petition for review
served upon the Regional Trial Court concerned in on certiorari. The petition shall raise only questions of
such manner as the Court of Appeals may direct, and law, which must be distinctly set forth.
disobedience thereto shall be punished as contempt.
Rule 19.38. Time for filing; extension. - The petition
E. APPEAL BY CERTIORARI TO THE SUPREME shall be filed within fifteen (15) days from notice of the
COURT judgment or final order or resolution appealed from, or
of the denial of the petitioner's motion for new trial or
Rule 19.36. Review discretionary. - A review by the reconsideration filed in due time after notice of the
Supreme Court is not a matter of right, but of sound judgment.
judicial discretion, which will be granted only for
serious and compelling reasons resulting in grave On motion duly filed and served, with full payment of
prejudice to the aggrieved party. The following, while the docket and other lawful fees and the deposit for
neither controlling nor fully measuring the court's costs before the expiration of the reglementary period,
discretion, indicate the serious and compelling, and the Supreme Court may for justifiable reasons grant an
necessarily, restrictive nature of the grounds that will extension of thirty (30) days only within which to file
warrant the exercise of the Supreme Courts the petition.
discretionary powers, when the Court of Appeals:
Rule 19.39. Docket and other lawful fees; proof of
a. Failed to apply the applicable standard or test for service of petition. - Unless he has theretofore done so
judicial review prescribed in these Special ADR Rules or unless the Supreme Court orders otherwise, the
in arriving at its decision resulting in substantial petitioner shall pay docket and other lawful fees to the
prejudice to the aggrieved party; clerk of court of the Supreme Court of P3,500.00 and
deposit the amount of P500.00 for costs at the time of
the filing of the petition. Proof of service of a copy
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 84

thereof on the lower court concerned and on the
adverse party shall be submitted together with the PhP 10,000.00 - if the award does not exceed PhP
petition. 1,000,000.00

Rule 19.40. Contents of petition. - The petition shall be PhP 20,000.00 - if the award does not exceed PhP
filed in eighteen (18) copies, with the original copy 20,000,000.00
intended for the court being indicated as such by the
petitioner, and shall (a) state the full name of the PhP 30,000.00 - if the award does not exceed PhP
appealing party as the petitioner and the adverse party 50,000,000.00
as respondent, without impleading the lower courts or
judges thereof either as petitioners or respondents; (b) PhP 40,000.00 - if the award does not exceed PhP
indicate the material dates showing when notice of the 100,000,000.00
judgment or final order or resolution subject thereof
was received, when a motion for new trial or PhP 50,000.00 - if the award exceeds PhP
reconsideration, if any, was filed and when notice of 100,000,000.00
the denial thereof was received; (c) set forth concisely a
statement of the matters involved, and the reasons or The minimal filing fee payable in "all other actions not
arguments relied on for the allowance of the petition; involving property" shall be paid by the petitioner
(d) be accompanied by a clearly legible duplicate seeking to enforce foreign arbitral awards under the
original, or a certified true copy of the judgment or New York Convention in the Philippines.
final order or resolution certified by the clerk of court
of the court a quo and the requisite number of plain Rule 20.2. Filing fee for action to enforce as a counter-
copies thereof, and such material portions of the petition. - A petition to enforce an arbitral award in a
record as would support the petition; and (e) contain a domestic arbitration or in an international commercial
sworn certification against forum shopping. arbitration submitted as a petition to enforce and/or
recognize an award in opposition to a timely petition to
Rule 19.41. Dismissal or denial of petition. - The failure vacate or set aside the arbitral award shall require the
of the petitioner to comply with any of the foregoing payment of the filing fees prescribed in Rule 20.1
requirements regarding the payment of the docket and above.
other lawful fees, deposit for costs, proof of service of
the petition, and the contents of and the documents Rule 20.3. Deposit fee for mediated settlement
which should accompany the petition shall be agreements. - Any party to a mediated settlement
sufficient ground for the dismissal thereof. agreement who deposits it with the clerk of court shall
pay a deposit fee of P500.00.
The Supreme Court may on its own initiative deny the
petition on the ground that the appeal is without merit, Rule 20.4. Filing fee for other proceedings. - The filing
or is prosecuted manifestly for delay, or that the fee for the filing of any other proceedings, including
questions raised therein are too insubstantial to applications for interim relief, as authorized under
require consideration. these Special Rules not covered under any of the
foregoing provisions, shall be P10,000.00.
Rule 19.42. Due course; elevation of records. - If the
petition is given due course, the Supreme Court may RULE 21: COSTS
require the elevation of the complete record of the case
or specified parts thereof within fifteen (15) days from Rule 21.1. Costs. - The costs of the ADR proceedings
notice. shall be borne by the parties equally unless otherwise
agreed upon or directed by the arbitrator or arbitral
PART VII tribunal.
FINAL PROVISIONS
Rule 21.2. On the dismissal of a petition against a
RULE 20: FILING AND DEPOSIT FEES ruling of the arbitral tribunal on a preliminary
question upholding its jurisdiction. - If the Regional
Rule 20.1. Filing fee in petitions or counter-petitions to Trial Court dismisses the petition against the ruling of
confirm or enforce, vacate or set aside arbitral award the arbitral tribunal on a preliminary question
or for the enforcement of a mediated settlement upholding its jurisdiction, it shall also order the
agreement. - The filing fee for filing a petition to petitioner to pay the respondent all reasonable costs
confirm or enforce, vacate or set aside an arbitral and expenses incurred in opposing the petition.
award in a domestic arbitration or in an international "Costs" shall include reasonable attorneys fees. The
commercial arbitration, or enforce a mediated court shall award costs upon application of the
settlement agreement shall be as follows: respondent after the petition is denied and the court
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 85

finds, based on proof submitted by respondent, that
the amount of costs incurred is reasonable. RULE 22: APPLICABILITY OF THE RULES OF
COURT
Rule 21.3. On recognition and enforcement of a foreign
arbitral award. - At the time the case is submitted to Rule 22.1. Applicability of Rules of Court. - The
the court for decision, the party praying for recognition provisions of the Rules of Court that are applicable to
and enforcement of a foreign arbitral award shall the proceedings enumerated in Rule 1.1 of these
submit a statement under oath confirming the costs he Special ADR Rules have either been included and
has incurred only in the proceedings in the Philippines incorporated in these Special ADR Rules or specifically
for such recognition and enforcement or setting-aside. referred to herein.
The costs shall include attorneys fees the party has
paid or is committed to pay to his counsel of record. In connection with the above proceedings, the Rules of
Evidence shall be liberally construed to achieve the
The prevailing party shall be entitled to an award of objectives of the Special ADR Rules.
costs which shall include the reasonable attorneys fees
of the prevailing party against the unsuccessful party. RULE 23: SEPARABILITY
The court shall determine the reasonableness of the
claim for attorneys fees. Rule 23.1. Separability Clause. - If, for any reason, any
part of the Special ADR Rules shall be held
Rule 21.4. Costs. - At the time the case is submitted to unconstitutional or invalid, other Rules or provisions
the court for decision, the party praying for hereof which are not affected thereby, shall continue to
confirmation or vacation of an arbitral award shall be in full force and effect.
submit a statement under oath confirming the costs he
has incurred only in the proceedings for confirmation RULE 24: TRANSITORY PROVISIONS
or vacation of an arbitral award. The costs shall include
the attorneys fees the party has paid or is committed Rule 24.1. Transitory Provision. - Considering its
to pay to his counsel of record. procedural character, the Special ADR Rules shall be
applicable to all pending arbitration, mediation or
The prevailing party shall be entitled to an award of other ADR forms covered by the ADR Act, unless the
costs with respect to the proceedings before the court, parties agree otherwise. The Special ADR Rules,
which shall include the reasonable attorneys fees of however, may not prejudice or impair vested rights in
the prevailing party against the unsuccessful party. The accordance with law.
court shall determine the reasonableness of the claim
for attorneys fees. RULE 25: ONLINE DISPUTE RESOLUTION

Rule 21.5. Bill of Costs. - Unless otherwise agreed upon Rule 25.1. Applicability of the Special ADR Rules to
by the parties in writing, at the time the case is Online Dispute Resolution. - Whenever applicable and
submitted to the court for decision, the party praying appropriate, the Special ADR Rules shall govern the
for recognition and enforcement or for setting aside an procedure for matters brought before the court
arbitral award shall submit a statement under oath involving Online Dispute Resolution.
confirming the costs he has incurred only in the
proceedings for such recognition and enforcement or Rule 25.2. Scope of Online Dispute Resolution. -
setting-aside. The costs shall include attorneys fees the Online Dispute Resolution shall refer to all electronic
party has paid or is committed to pay to his counsel of forms of ADR including the use of the internet and
record. other web or computed based technologies for
facilitating ADR.
The prevailing party shall be entitled to an award of
costs, which shall include reasonable attorneys fees of RULE 26: EFFECTIVITY
the prevailing party against the unsuccessful party. The
court shall determine the reasonableness of the claim Rule 26.1. Effectivity. - The Special ADR Rules shall
for attorneys fees. take effect fifteen (15) days after its complete
publication in two (2) newspapers of general
Rule 21.6. Governments exemption from payment of circulation.
fees. - The Republic of the Philippines, its agencies and
instrumentalities are exempt from paying legal fees
provided in these Special ADR Rules. Local RULE A: GUIDELINES FOR THE RESOLUTION OF
governments and government controlled corporation ISSUES RELATED TO ARBITRATION OF LOANS
with or with or without independent charters are not SECURED BY COLLATERAL
exempt from paying such fees.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 86

Rule A.1. Applicability of an arbitration agreement in a action taken by the lender against the collateral
contract of loan applies to the accessory contract securing the loan may apply to the arbitral tribunal for
securing the loan. - An arbitration agreement in a relief, including a claim for damages, against such
contract of loan extends to and covers the accessory action of the lender. An application to the court may
contract securing the loan such as a pledge or a also be made by the borrower against any action taken
mortgage executed by the borrower in favor of the by the lender against the collateral securing the loan
lender under that contract of loan. but only if the arbitral tribunal cannot act effectively to
prevent an irreparable injury to the rights of such
Rule A.2. Foreclosure of pledge or extra-judicial borrower during the pendency of the arbitral
foreclosure of mortgage not precluded by arbitration. - proceeding.
The commencement of the arbitral proceeding under
the contract of loan containing an arbitration An arbitration agreement in a contract of loan
agreement shall not preclude the lender from availing precludes the borrower therein providing security for
himself of the right to obtain satisfaction of the loan the loan from filing and/or proceeding with any action
under the accessory contract by foreclosure of the in court to prevent the lender from foreclosing the
thing pledged or by extra-judicial foreclosure of the pledge or extra-judicially foreclosing the mortgage. If
collateral under the real estate mortgage in accordance any such action is filed in court, the lender shall have
with Act No. 3135. the right provided in the Special ADR Rules to have
such action stayed on account of the arbitration
The lender may likewise institute foreclosure agreement.
proceedings against the collateral securing the loan
prior to the commencement of the arbitral proceeding. Rule A.5. Relief that may be granted by the arbitral
tribunal. - The arbitral tribunal, in aid of the arbitral
By agreeing to refer any dispute under the contract of proceeding before it, may upon submission of
loan to arbitration, the lender who is secured by an adequate security, suspend or enjoin the lender from
accessory contract of real estate mortgage shall be proceeding against the collateral securing the loan
deemed to have waived his right to obtain satisfaction pending final determination by the arbitral tribunal of
of the loan by judicial foreclosure. the dispute brought to it for decision under such
contract of loan.
Rule A.3. Remedy of the borrower against an action
taken by the lender against the collateral before the The arbitral tribunal shall have the authority to resolve
constitution of the arbitral tribunal. - The borrower the issue of the validity of the foreclosure of the thing
providing security for the payment of his loan who is pledged or of the extrajudicial foreclosure of the
aggrieved by the action taken by the lender against the collateral under the real estate mortgage if the same
collateral securing the loan may, if such action against has not yet been foreclosed or confirm the validity of
the collateral is taken before the arbitral tribunal is such foreclosure if made before the rendition of the
constituted, apply with the appropriate court for arbitral award and had not been enjoined.
interim relief against any such action of the lender.
Such interim relief may be obtained only in a special Rule A.6. Arbitration involving a third-party provider
proceeding for that purpose, against the action taken of security. - An arbitration agreement contained in a
by the lender against the collateral, pending the contract of loan between the lender and the borrower
constitution of the arbitral tribunal. Any determination extends to and covers an accessory contract securing
made by the court in that special proceeding pertaining the loan, such as a pledge, mortgage, guaranty or
to the merits of the controversy, including the right of suretyship, executed by a person other than the
the lender to proceed against the collateral, shall be borrower only if such third-party securing the loan has
only provisional in nature. agreed in the accessory contract, either directly or by
reference, to be bound by such arbitration agreement.
After the arbitral tribunal is constituted, the court shall
stay its proceedings and defer to the jurisdiction of the Unless otherwise expressly agreed upon by the third-
arbitral tribunal over the entire controversy including party securing the loan, his agreement to be bound by
any question regarding the right of the lender to the arbitration agreement in the contract of loan shall
proceed against the collateral. pertain to disputes arising from or in connection with
the relationship between the lender and the borrower
as well as the relationship between the lender and such
Rule A.4. Remedy of borrower against action taken by third-party including the right of the lender to proceed
the lender against the collateral after the arbitral against the collateral securing the loan, but shall
tribunal has been constituted. - After the arbitral exclude disputes pertaining to the relationship
tribunal is constituted, the borrower providing security exclusively between the borrower and the provider of
for the payment of his loan who is aggrieved by the
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 87

security such as that involving a claim by the provider Pursuant to Section 52 of republic Act No. 9285,
of security for indemnification against the borrower. otherwise known as the alternative Dispute Resolution
Act of 2004" ("ADR Act"), the following Rules and
In this multi-party arbitration among the lender, the Regulations (these "Rules") are hereby promulgated to
borrower and the third party securing the loan, the implement the provisions of the ADR Act:
parties may agree to submit to arbitration before a sole
arbitrator or a panel of three arbitrators to be Chapter 1
appointed either by an Appointing Authority GENERAL PROVISIONS
designated by the parties in the arbitration agreement
or by a default Appointing Authority under the law. RULE 1 Policy and Application

In default of an agreement on the manner of Article 1.1 Purpose. These Rules are promulgated to
appointing arbitrators or of constituting the arbitral prescribe the procedures and guidelines for the
tribunal in such multi-party arbitration, the dispute implementation of the ADR Act.
shall be resolved by a panel of three arbitrators to be
designated by the Appointing Authority under the law. Article 1.2 Declaration of policy. It is the policy of the
But even in default of an agreement on the manner of State:
appointing an arbitrator or constituting an arbitral
tribunal in a multi-party arbitration, if the borrower (a) To promote party autonomy in the resolution of
and the third party securing the loan agree to designate disputes or the freedom of the parties to make their
a common arbitrator, arbitration shall be decided by a own arrangements to resolve their disputes;
panel of three arbitrators: one to be designated by the
lender; the other to be designated jointly by the (b) To encourage and actively promote the use of
borrower and the provider of security who have agreed Alternative Dispute Resolution ("ADR") as an
to designate the same arbitrator; and a third arbitrator important means to achieve speedy and impartial
who shall serve as the chairperson of the arbitral panel justice and declog court dockets;
to be designated by the two party-designated
arbitrators. (c) To provide means for the use of ADR as an efficient
tool and an alternative procedure for the resolution of
appropriate cases; and
3.5 DEPARTMENT CIRCULAR NO. 98
IMPLEMENTING RULES AND (d) To enlist active private sector participation in the
REGULATIONS OF THE ALTERNATIVE settlement of disputes through ADR
DISPUTE RESOLUTION ACT OF 2004.
Article 1.3 Exception to the Application of the ADR Act.
The provisions of the ADR Act shall not apply to the
resolution or settlement of the following:
Whereas, pursuant to Section 52 of Republic Act No.
9285, otherwise known as the "Alternative Dispute (a) labor disputes covered by Presidential Decree No.
Resolution Act of 2004" (ADR Act"), the Secretary of 442, otherwise known as the "Labor Code of the
Justice is directed to convene a Committee for the Philippines, as a amended", and its Implementing
formulation of the appropriate rules and regulations Rules and Regulations;
necessary for the implementation of the ADR Act;
(b) the civil status of persons;
Whereas, the committee was composed of
representatives from the Department of Justice, the (c) the validity of marriage;
Department of Trade and Industry, the Department of
the Interior and Local Government, the President of (d) any ground for legal separation;
the Integrated Bar of the Philippines, a representative
from the ADR organizations. (e) the jurisdiction of courts;

Wherefore, the following rules and regulations are (f) future legitimate;
hereby adopted as the Implementing Rules and
Regulations of Republic Act no.9285. (g) criminal liability;

IMPLEMENTING RULES AND REGULATIONS OF (h) those disputes which by law cannot be
THE ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE RESOLUTION ACT compromised; and
OF 2004 (R.A No. 9285)
(i) disputes referred to court-annexed mediation.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 88

6. Award means any partial or final decision by an
Article 1.4. Electronic Signature and E-Commerce Act. arbitrator in resolving the issue or controversy.
The provisions of the Electronic Signature and E-
Commerce Act, and its implementing Rules and 7. Confidential Information means any information,
Regulations shall apply to proceedings contemplated relative to the subject of mediation or arbitration,
in the ADR Act. expressly intended by the source not to disclosed, or
obtained under circumstances that would create
Article 1.5. Liability of ADR Providers/Practitioners. reasonable expectation on behalf of the source that the
The ADR provides /practitioners shall have the same information shall not be disclosed. It shall include:
civil liability for acts done in the performance of their
official duties as that of public officers as provided in (a) communication, oral or written, made in a dispute
Section 38 (1), Chapter 9, Book 1 of the Administrative resolution proceeding, including any memoranda,
Code of 1987, upon a clear showing of bad faith, malice notes or work product of the neutral party or non-party
or gross negligence. participant;

RULE 2- Definition of Terms (b) an oral or written statement made or which occurs
during mediation or for purposes of considering,
Article 1.6 Definition of Terms. For purposes of these conducting, participating, initiating, continuing or
Rules, the terms shall be defined as follows: reconvening mediation or retaining a mediator; and

A. Terms Applicable to All Chapters (c) pleadings, motions, manifestations, witness


statements, reports filed or submitted in arbitration or
1. ADR Provider means the Institutions or persons for expert evaluation.
accredited as mediators, conciliators, arbitrators,
neutral evaluators or any person exercising similar 8. Counsel means a lawyer duly admitted to the
functions in any Alternative dispute resolution system. practice of law in the Philippines and in good standing
This is without prejudice to the rights of the parties to who represents a party in any ADR process.
choose non-accredited individuals to act as mediator,
conciliator, arbitrator or neutral evaluator of their 9. Court means Regional Trial Court Except insofar as
dispute. otherwise defined under Model Law.

2. Alternative Dispute Resolution System means any 10. Government Agency means any governmental
process or procedures used to resolve a dispute or entity, office or officer, other than a court that is vested
controversy, other than by adjudication of a presiding by law with quasi-judicial power or the power to
judge of a court or an officer of a government agency, resolve or adjudicate disputes involving the
as defined in the ADR Act, in which neutral third government, its agencies and instrumentalities or
person participates to assist in the resolution of issues, private persons.
Including arbitration, mediation, conciliation, early
neutral evaluation, mini-trial or any combination 11. Model Law means the Model on International
thereof. Commercial Arbitration adopted by the United Nations
Commission on International Trade Law on 21 June
3. Arbitration means a voluntary dispute resolution 1985.
process in which one or more arbitrators, appointed in
accordance with the agreement of the parties or these 12. Proceedings means judicial, administrative or other
Rules, resolve a dispute by rendering an award. adjudicative process, including related pre-hearing or
post hearing motions, conferences and discovery.
4. Arbitration Agreement means agreement by the
parties to submit to arbitration all or certain disputes 13. Record means information written on a tangible
which have arisen or which may arise between them in medium or stored in an electronic or other similar
respect of a defined legal relationship, whether medium, retrievable in a perceivable form.
contractual or not. An arbitration agreement may be in
the form of an arbitration clause in a contract or in the 14. Roster means a list of persons qualified to provide
form of a separate agreement. ADR services as neutrals or to serve as arbitrators.

5. Authenticate means to sign, execute, adopt a symbol 15. Special ADR Rules means the Special Rules of
or encrypt a record or establish the authenticity of a Court on Alternative Dispute Resolution issued by the
record or term. Supreme Court on September 1, 2009.

B. Terms and Applicable to the Chapter Mediation


ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 89

3. Arbitration means any arbitration whether or not
1. Ad hoc Mediation means any mediation other than administered by a permanent arbitration institution.
institutional or court-annexed.
4. Commercial Arbitration means an arbitration that
2. Institutional Mediation means any mediation covers matters arising from all relationships of a
process conducted under the rules of a mediation commercial nature, whether contractual or not.
institution. Relationships of a commercial nature include, but are
not limited to, the following commercial transactions:
3. Court-Annexed Mediation means mediation process any trade transaction for the supply or exchange of
conducted under the auspices of the court and in goods or services; distribution agreements;
accordance with Supreme Court approved guidelines, construction of works; commercial representation or
after such court has acquired jurisdiction of the agency; factoring; leasing; consulting; engineering;
dispute. licensing; investment; financing; banking; insurance;
joint venture and other forms of industrial or business
4. Court-Referred Mediation means mediation ordered cooperation; carriage of goods or passengers by air, sea
by a court to be conducted in accordance with the rail or road.
agreement of the parties when an action is prematurely
commenced in violation of such agreement. 5. Convention Award means a foreign arbitral award in
a Convention State.
5. Certified Mediator means a mediator certified by the
Office for ADR as having successfully completed its 6. Convention State means a state that is a member of
regular professional training program. the New York Convention.

6. Mediation means a voluntary process in which a 7. Court (under the Model Law) means a body or organ
mediator, selected by the disputing party voluntary of the judicial system of the Philippines (i.e., the
agreement regarding a dispute. Regional Trial Court, Court of Appeals and Supreme
Court).
7. Mediation Party means a person who participates in
a mediation and whose consent is necessary to resolve 8. International Arbitration means an arbitration
the dispute. where:

8. Mediator means a person who conducts mediation. (a) the parties to an arbitration agreement have, at the
time of the conclusion of that agreement, their places
9. Non-Party Participant means a person, other than a of business in different states; or
party or mediator, who participates in a mediation
proceeding as a witness, resource person or expert. (b) one of the following places is situated outside the
Philippines in which the parties have their places of
C. Terms Applicable to the Chapter on International business:
Commercial Arbitration
(i) the place of arbitration if determined in, or
1. Appointing Authority as used in the Model Law shall pursuant to , the arbitration agreement;
mean the person or institution named in the
arbitration agreement as the appointing authority; or (ii) any place where a substantial part of the
the regular arbitration institution under whose rules obligations of the commercial relationship is to be
the arbitration is agreed to be conducted. Where the performed or the place with the subject matter of the
parties have agreed to submit their dispute to dispute is most closely connected; or
institutional arbitration rules and unless they have
agreed to a different procedure, they shall be deemed (c) the parties have expressly agreed that the subject
to have agreed to the procedure under such arbitration matter of the arbitration agreement relates to more
rules for the selection and appointment of arbitrators. than one country.
In ad hoc arbitration, the default appointment of an
arbitrator shall be made by the National President of For this purpose:
the Integrated Bar of the Philippines (IBP) or his /her
duly authorized representative. (a) if a party has more than one place of business, the
place of business is that which has the closest
2. Arbitral Tribunal (under the Model Law) means a relationship to the arbitration agreement;
sole arbitrator or a panel of arbitrators.
(b) if a party does not have a place of business,
reference is to be made to his/her habitual residence.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 90

arbitration of disputes in the Philippines on a regular
9. New York Convention means the United Nations and permanent basis.
Convention of the Recognition and Enforcement of
Foreign Arbitral Awards approved in 1958 and ratified 11. Request for Appointment means the letter-request
by the Philippine Senate under Senate Resolution to the appointing authority of either or both parties for
No.71. the appointment of arbitrator/s or of the two
arbitrators first appointed by the parties for the
10. Non-Convention Award means a foreign arbitral appointment of the third member of an arbitral
ward made in a state, which is not a Convention State. tribunal.

11. Non-Convention State means a state that is not a 12. Representative is a person duly authorized in
member of the New York Convention. writing by a party to a dispute, who could be a counsel,
a person in his/her employ or any other person of
D. Terms Applicable to the Chapter on Domestic his/her choice, duly authorized to represent said party
Arbitration in the arbitration proceedings.

1. Ad hoc Arbitration means arbitration administered 13. Respondent means the person/s against whom the
by an arbitrator and/or the parties themselves. An claimant commence/s arbitration.
arbitration administered by an institution shall be
regarded as ad hoc arbitration if such institution is not 14. Written communication means the pleading,
a permanent or regular arbitration institution in the motion, manifestation, notice, order, award and any
Philippines. other document or paper submitted or filed with the
arbitral tribunal or delivered to a party.
2. Appointing Authority in Ad Hoc Arbitration means,
in the absence of an agreement, the National President E. Terms Applicable to the Chapter on Other ADR
of the IBP or his/her duly authorized representative. Forms

3. Appointing Authority Guidelines means the set of 1. Early Neutral Evaluation means an ADR process
rules approved or adopted by an appointing authority wherein parties and their lawyers are brought together
for the making of a Request for Appointment, early in the pre-trial phase to present summaries of
Challenge, termination of the Mandate of Arbitrator/s their cases and to receive a non-binding assessment by
and for taking action thereon. an experienced neutral person, with expertise in the
subject matter or substance of the dispute.
4. Arbitration means a voluntary dispute resolution
process in which one or more arbitrators, Appointed in 2. Mediation-Arbitration or Med-Arb is a two-step
accordance with the agreement of the parties or these dispute resolution process involving mediation and
Rules, resolve a dispute by rendering an award. then followed by arbitration.

5. Arbitral Tribunal means a sole arbitrator or a panel, 3. Mini-trial means a structured dispute resolution
board or committee of arbitrators. method in which the merits of a case are argued before
a panel comprising of senior decision-makers, with or
6. Claimant means a person/s with a claim against without the presence of a neutral third person, before
another and who commence/s arbitration against the which the parties seek a negotiated settlement.
latter.
CHAPTER 2
7. Court means, unless otherwise specified in these THE OFFICE FOR ALTERNATIVE DISPUTE
Rules, a Regional Trial Court. RESOLUTION

8. Day means calendar day. RULE 1- Office for Alternative Dispute Resolution
(OADR)
9. Domestic Arbitration means arbitration that is not
international as defined in Article 1(3) of the Mode Article 2.1. Establishment of the Office for Alternative
Law. Dispute Resolution. There is hereby established the
OADR as an agency attached to the Department of
10. Institutional Arbitration means arbitration Justice. It shall have a Secretariat and shall be headed
administered by an entity, which is registered as a by an Executive Director, who shall be appointed by
domestic corporation with the Securities and Exchange the President of the Philippines, taking into
Commission (SEC) and engaged in. among others, consideration the recommendation of the Secretary of
Justice.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 91

(d) To make studies on and provide linkages for the
Article 2.2. Powers of the OADR. The OADR shall have development, implementation, monitoring and
the following powers; evaluation of government and private ADR programs
and secure information about their respective
(a) To act as appointing authority of mediators and administrative rules/procedures, problems
arbitrators when the parties agree in writing that it encountered and how they were resolved;
shall be empowered to do so;
(e) To compile and publish a list or roster of ADR
(b) To conduct seminars, symposia, conferences and providers/practitioners, who have undergone training
other public fora and publish proceedings of said by the OADR, or by such training
activities and relevant materials/information that providers/institutions recognized or certified by the
would promote, develop and expand the use of ADR; OADR as performing functions in any ADR system.
The list or roster shall include the addresses, contact
(c) To establish an ADR library or resource center numbers, e-mail addresses, ADR service/s rendered
where ADR laws, rules and regulation, jurisprudence, (e.g. arbitration, mediation) and experience in ADR of
books, articles and other information about ADR in the the ADR providers/practitioners;
Philippines and elsewhere may be stored and accessed;
(f) To compile a list or roster of foreign or international
(d) To establish training programs for ADR ADR providers/practitioners. The list or roster shall
providers/practitioners, both in the public and private include the addresses, contact numbers, e-mail
sectors; and to undertake periodic and continuing addresses, ADR service/s rendered (e.g. arbitration,
training programs for arbitration and mediation and mediation) and experience in ADR of the ADR
charge fees on participants. It may do so in providers/practitioners; and
conjunction with or in cooperation with the IBP,
private ADR organizations, and local and foreign (g) To perform such other functions as may be
government offices and agencies and international assigned to it.
organizations;
Article 2.4. Divisions of the OADR. The OADR shall
(e) To certify those who have successfully completed have the following staff and service divisions, among
the regular professional training programs provided by others:
the OADR;
(a) Secretariat shall provide necessary support and
(f) To charge for services rendered such as, among discharge such other functions and duties as may be
others, for training and certifications of ADR directed by the Executive Director.
providers;
(b) Public information and Promotion Division shall
(g) To accept donations, grants and other assistance be charged with the dissemination of information, the
from local and foreign sources; and promotion of the importance and public acceptance of
mediation, conciliation, arbitration or any combination
(h) To exercise such other powers as may be necessary thereof and other ADR forms as a means of achieving
and proper to carry into effect the provisions of the speedy and efficient means of resolving all disputes
ADR Act. and to help in the promotion, development and
expansion of the use of ADR.
Article 2.3. Functions of the OADR. The OADR shall
have the following functions; (c) Training Division shall be charged with the
formulation of effective standards for the training of
(a) To promote, develop and expand the use of ADR in ADR practitioners; conduct of training in accordance
the private and public sectors through information, with such standards; issuance of certifications of
education and communication; training to ADR practitioners and ADR service
providers who have undergone the professional
(b) To monitor, study and evaluate the use of ADR by training provided by the OADR; and the coordination
the private and public sectors for purposes of, among of the development, implementation, monitoring and
others, policy formulation; evaluation of government and private sector ADR
programs.
(c) To recommend to Congress needful statutory
changes to develop, strengthen and improve ADR (d) Records and Library Division shall be charged
practices in accordance with international professional with the establishment and maintenance of a central
standards; repository of ADR laws, rules and regulations,
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 92

jurisprudence, books, articles, and other information requests, not later than the pre-trial conference or
about ADR in the Philippines and elsewhere. upon the request of both parties thereafter, to refer the
parties to mediation in accordance with the agreement
RULE 2 The Advisory Council of the parties.

Article 2.5. Composition of the Advisory Council. There RULE 2- Selection of a Mediator
is also created an Advisory Council composed of a
representative from each of the following: Article 3.3. Freedom to Select mediator. The parties
have the freedom to select mediator. The parties may
(a) Mediation profession; request the OADR to provide them with a list or roster
or the resumes of its certified mediators. The OADR
(b) Arbitration profession; may be requested to inform the mediator of his/her
selection.
(c) ADR organizations;
Article 3.4. Replacement of Mediator. If the mediator
(d) IBP; and selected is unable to act as such for any reason, the
parties may, upon being informed of such fact, select
(e) Academe. another mediator.

The members of the Council, who shall be appointed Article 3.5. Refusal or Withdrawal of Mediator. A
by the Secretary of Justice upon the recommendation mediator may refuse from acting as such, withdraw or
of the OADR Executive Director, shall choose a may be compelled to withdraw from mediator
Chairman from among themselves. proceedings under the following circumstances:

Article 2.6. Role of the Advisory Council. The Advisory (a) If any of the parties so requests the mediator to
Council shall advise the Executive Director on policy, withdraw;
operational and other relevant matters. The Council
shall meet regularly, at least once every two (2) (b) The mediator does not have the qualifications,
months, or upon call by the Executive Director. training and experience to enable him/her to meet the
reasonable expectations of the parties;
CHAPTER 3
MEDIATION (c) Where the mediator's impartially is in question;

RULE 1 General Provisions (d) If continuation of the process would violate any
ethical standards;
Article 3.1. Scope of Application. These Rules apply to
voluntary mediation, whether ad hoc or institutional, (e) If the safety of any of the parties would be
other than court-annexed mediation and only in jeopardized;
default of an agreement of the parties on the applicable
rules. (f) If the mediator is unable to provide effective
services;
These Rules shall also apply to all cases pending before
an administrative or quasi-judicial agency that are (g) In case of conflict of interest; and
subsequently agreed upon by the parties to be referred
to mediation. (h) In any of the following instances, if the mediator is
satisfied that:
Article 3.2. Statement of Policy. In applying and
construing the provisions of these Rules, consideration (i) one or more of the parties is/are not acting in good
must be given to the need to promote candor of parties faith;
and mediators through confidentiality of the mediation
process, the policy of fostering prompt, economical (ii) the parties' agreement would be illegal or involve
and amicable resolution of disputes in accordance with the commission of a crime;
principles of integrity of determination by the parties
and the policy that the decision-making authority in (iii) continuing the dispute resolution would give rise
the mediation process rests with the parties. to an appearance of impropriety;

A party may petition a court before which an action is (iv) continuing with the process would cause
prematurely brought in a matter which is the subject of significant harm to a non-participating person or to
a mediation agreement, if at least one party so the public; or
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 93

sessions or caucuses that the mediator holds with a
(v) continuing discussion would not be in the best party.
interest of the parties, their minor children or the
dispute resolution process. Article 3.9. Consent and Self-Determination. (a) A
mediator shall make reasonable efforts to ensure that
RULE 3 Ethical Conduct of a Mediator each party understands the nature and character of the
mediation proceeding including private caucuses, the
Article 3.6 Competence. It is not required that a issues, the available options, the alternatives to non-
mediator shall have special qualifications by settlement, and that each party is free and able to
background or profession unless the special make whatever choices he/she desires regarding
qualifications of a mediator shall : participation in mediation generally and regarding
specific settlement options.
(a) maintain the continually upgrade his/her
professional competence in mediation skills; If a mediator believes that a party, who is not
represented by counsel, is unable to understand, or
(b) ensure that his/her qualifications, training and fully participate, the mediation proceedings for any
experience are known to and accepted by the parties; reason, a mediator may either:
and
(i) limit the scope of the mediation proceedings in a
(c) serve only when his/her qualifications, training and manner consistent with the party's ability to
experience enable him/her to meet the reasonable participate, and/or recommend that the party obtain
expectations of the parties and shall not hold appropriate assistance in order to continue with the
himself/herself out or give the impression that he/she process; or
does not have.
(ii) terminate the mediation proceedings.
Upon the request of a mediation party, an individual
who is requested to serve as mediator shall disclose (b) A mediator shall recognize and put in mind that the
his/her qualifications to mediate a dispute. primary responsibility of resolving a dispute and the
shaping of a voluntary and uncoerced settlement rests
Article 3.7 Impartially. A mediator shall maintain with the parties.
impartiality.
Article 3.10. Separation of Mediation from Counseling
(a) Before accepting a mediation, an individual who is and Legal Advice. (a) Except in evaluative mediation or
requested to serve as a mediator shall: when the parties so request, a mediator shall:

(i) make an inquiry that is reasonable under the (i) refrain from giving legal or technical advice and
circumstances to determine whether there are known otherwise engaging in counseling or advocacy; and
facts that a reasonable individual would consider likely
to affect the impartiality of the mediator, including a (ii) abstain from expressing his/her personal opinion
financial or personal interest in the outcome of the on the rights and duties of the parties and the merits of
mediation and any existing or past relationship with a any proposal made.
party of foreseeable participant in the mediation; and
(b) Where appropriate and where either or both parties
(ii) disclose to the mediation parties any such fact are not represented by counsel, a mediator shall;
known or learned as soon as practical before accepting
a mediation. (i) recommend that the parties seek outside
professional advice to help them make informed
(b) If a mediator learns any fact described in paragraph decision and to understand the implication of any
(a) of this Article after accepting a mediation, the proposal; and
mediator shall disclose it as soon as practicable to the
mediation parties. (ii) suggest that the parties seek independent legal
and/or technical advice before a settlement agreement
Article 3.8. Confidentiality. A mediator shall keep in is signed.
utmost confidence all confidential information
obtained in the course of the mediation process. (c) without the consent of al parties, and for a
reasonable time under the particular circumstance, a
A mediator shall discuss issues of confidentiality and mediator who also practices another profession shall
the extent of confidentiality provided in any private not establish a professional relationship in that other
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 94

profession with one of the parties, or any person or (d) In preparing for participation in mediation, the
entity, in a substantially and factually related matter. lawyer shall confer and discuss with his/her client the
following:
Article 3.11. Charging of Fees. (a) A mediator shall fully
disclose and explain to the parties the basis of cost, (i) The mediation process as essentially a negotiation
fees and charges. between the parties assisted by their respective
lawyers, and facilitated by a mediator, stressing it its
(b) The mediator who withdraws from the mediation difference from litigation, its advantages and benefits,
shall return to the parties any unearned fee and the clients heightened role in mediation and
unused deposit. responsibility for its success and explaining the role of
the lawyer in mediation proceedings,
(c) A mediator shall not enter into a fee agreement,
which is contingent upon the results of the mediation (ii) The substance of the upcoming mediation such as;
or the amount of the settlement.
(aa) The substantive issues involved in the dispute and
Article 3.12 Promotion of Respect and Control of their prioritization in terms of importance to his/her
Abuse of Process. The mediatorcle 3.12 Promotion of clients real interests and needs.
Respect and Control of Abuse of Process. of the settle
mentcost ablish a professional relationship I shall (bb) The study of other partys position in relation to
encourage mutual respect between the parties, and the issues with a view to understanding the underlying
shall take reasonable steps, subject to the principle of interests, fears, concerns and needs;
self-determination, to limit abuses of the mediation
process. (cc) The information or facts to be gathered or sought
from the other side or to be exchanged that are
Article 3.13. Solicitation or Acceptance of any Gift. No necessary for informed decision-making;
mediator or any member of a mediators immediate
family or his/her agent shall request, solicit, receive or (dd) The possible options for settlement but stressing
accept any gift or any type of compensation other than the need to be open-minded about other possibilities;
the agreed fee and expenses in connection with any and
matter coming before the mediator.
(ee) The best, worst and most likely alternative to a
RULE 4 Role of Parties and their Counsels non-negotiated settlement.

Article 3.14. Designation of Counsel or Any Person to Article 3.16. Other Matters which the Counsel shall do
Assist Mediation. Except as otherwise provided by the to Assist Mediation. The lawyer;
ADR Act or by these Rules, a party may designate a
lawyer or any other person to provide assistance in the (a) shall give support to the mediator so that his/her
mediation. A waiver of this right shall be made in client will fully understand the rules and processes of
writing by the party waiving it. A waiver of mediation;
participation or legal representation may be rescinded
at any time. (b) shall impress upon his/her client the importance of
speaking for himself/herself and taking responsibility
Article 3.15. Role of Counsel. (a) The lawyer shall view for making decisions during the negotiations within
his/her role in the mediation as a collaborator with the the mediation process.;
other lawyer in working together toward the common
goal of helping their clients resolve their differences to (c) may ask for a recess in order to give advice or
their mutual advantage. suggestions to his/her client in private, if he/she
perceives that his/her client is unable to bargain
(b) The lawyer shall encourage and assist his/her client effectively;
to actively participate in positive discussions and
cooperate in crafting an agreement to resolve their (d) shall assist his/her client and the mediator put in
dispute. writing the terms of the settlement agreement that the
parties have entered into. That lawyers shall see to it
(c) The lawyer must assist his/her client to that the terms of the settlement agreement are not
comprehend and appreciate the mediation process and contrary to law, morals, good customs, public order or
its benefits, as well as the clients greater personal public policy.
responsibility for the success of mediation in resolving
the dispute. RULE 5 Conduct of Mediation
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 95

Article 3.17. Articles to be Considered in the Conduct of dispute to mediation by an institution shall include an
Mediation. (a) The mediator shall not make untruthful agreement to be bound by the internal mediation and
or exaggerated claims about the dispute resolution administrative policies of such institution. Further, an
process, its costs and benefits, its outcome or the agreement to submit a dispute to mediation under
mediators qualifications and abilities during the entire institutional mediation rules shall be deemed to
mediation process. include an agreement to have such rules govern the
mediation of the dispute and for the mediator, the
(b) The mediator shall held the parties reach a parties, their respective counsels and non-party
satisfactory resolution to their dispute but has no participants to abide by such rules.
authority to impose a settlement on the parties.
RULE 8 Enforcement of Mediated Settlement
(c) The parties shall personally appear for mediation Agreement
and may be assisted by a lawyer. A party maybe
represented by an agent who must have full authority Article 3.20. Operative Principles to Guide Mediation.
to negotiate and settle the dispute. The mediation shall be guided by the following
operative principles:
(d) The mediation process shall, in general, consists of
the following stages: (a) A settlement agreement following successful
mediation shall be prepared by the parties with the
(i) opening statement of the mediator assistance of their respective counsels. If any, and by
the mediator. The parties and their respective counsels
(ii) individual narration by the parties; shall endeavor to make the terms and condition of the
settlement agreement complete and to make adequate
(iii) exchange by the parties; provision for the contingency of breach to avoid
conflicting interpretations of the agreement.
(iv) summary of issues;
(b) The parties and their respective counsels, if any,
(v) generation and evaluation of options; and shall sign the settlement agreement. The mediator
shall certify that he/she explained the contents of the
(vi) closure settlement agreement to the parties in a language
known to them.
(e) The mediation proceeding shall be held in private.
Person, other than the parties, their representatives (c) If the parties agree, the settlement agreement may
and mediator, may attend only with the consent of all be jointly deposited by the parties or deposited by one
the parties, party with prior notice to the other party/ties with the
Clerk of Court of the Regional Trial Court (a) where the
(f) the mediation shall be closed: principal place of business in the Philippines of any of
the parties is located; (b) if any of the parties is an
(i) by the execution of a settlement agreement by the individual, where any of those individuals resides; or
parties; (c) in the National Capital Judicial Region. Where
there is a need to enforce the settlement agreement, a
(ii) by the withdrawal of any party from mediation; and petition may be filed by any of the parties with the
same court in which case, the court shall proceed
(iii) by the written declaration of the mediator that any summarily to hear the petition, in accordance with the
further effort at mediation would not be helpful Special ADR Rules.

RULE 6 Place of Mediation (d) The parties may agree in the settlement agreement
that the mediator shall become a sole arbitrator for the
Article 3.18. Agreement of Parties on the Place of dispute and shall treat the settlement agreement as an
Mediation. The parties are free to agree on the place of arbitral award which shall be subject to enforcement
mediation. Failing such agreement, the place of under Republic Act No. 876, otherwise know as "The
mediation shall be any place convenient and Arbitration Law", notwithstanding the provisions of
appropriate to all parties. Executive Order No. 1008, s. 1985, other wise known
as the "Construction Industry Arbitration Law" for
RULE 7 Effect of Agreement to Submit Dispute to mediated disputes outside the Construction Industry
Mediation Under Institutional Rules Arbitration Commission.

Article 3.19 Agreement to Submit a Dispute to RULE 9 Confidentiality of Information


Mediation by an Institution. An agreement to submit a
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 96

Article 3.21. Confidentiality of Information. participant if the information is provided by such non-
Information obtained through mediation proceedings party participant.
shall be subject to the following principles and
guidelines: (c) A person who discloses confidential information
shall be precluded from asserting the privilege under
(a) Information obtained through mediation shall be Article 3.21 (Confidentiality of Information) to bar
privileged and confidential disclosure of the rest of the information necessary to a
complete understanding of the previously disclosed
(b) A party, mediator, or non-party participant may information. If a person suffers loss or damage as a
refuse to disclose and may prevent any other person result of the disclosure of the confidential information,
from disclosing a confidential information. he/she shall be entitled to damages in a judicial
proceeding against the person who made the
(c) Confidential information shall not be subject to disclosure.
discovery and shall be inadmissible in any adversarial
proceeding, whether judicial or quasi-judicial. (d) A person who discloses or makes a representation
However, evidence or information that is otherwise about a mediation is precluded from asserting the
admissible or subject to discovery does not become privilege mentioned in Article 3.21 to the extent that
inadmissible or protected from discovery solely by the communication prejudices another person in the
reason of its use in a mediation. proceeding and it is necessary for the person
prejudiced to respond to the representation or
(d) In such an adversarial proceeding, the following disclosure.
persons involved or previously involved in a mediation
may not be compelled to disclosed confidential Article 3.23. Exceptions to the Privilege of
information obtained during the mediation: Confidentiality of information. (a) There is no privilege
against disclosure under Article 3.21 in the following
(i) the parties to the dispute; instances:

(ii) the mediator or mediators; (i) in an agreement evidenced by a record


authenticated by all parties to the agreement;
(iii) the counsel for the parties;
(ii) available to the public or made during a session of a
(iv) the non-party participants mediation which is open, or is required by law to be
open, to the public;
(v) any person hired or engaged in connection with the
mediation as secretary, stenographer, clerk or (iii) a threat or statement of a plan to inflict bodily
assistant; and injury or commit a crime of violence;

(vi) any other person who obtains or possesses (iv) intentionally used to plan a crime, attempt to
confidential information by reason of his/her commit, or commit a crime, or conceal an ongoing
profession. crime or criminal activity.

(e) The protections of the ADR Act shall continue to (v) sought or offered to prove or disprove abuse,
apply even if a mediator is found to have failed to act neglect, abandonment or exploitation in a proceeding
impartially. in which a public agency is protecting the interest of an
individual protected by law; but this exception does
(f) A mediator may not be called to testify to provide not apply where a child protection matter is referred to
confidential information gathered in mediation. A mediation by a court or where a public agency
mediator who is wrongfully subpoenaed shall be participates in the child protection mediation;
reimbursed the full cost of his/her attorneys fees and
related expenses. (vi) sought or offered to prove or disapprove a claim or
complaint of professional misconduct or malpractice
Article 3.22. Waiver of Confidentiality. (a) A privilege filed against a party, non-party participant, or
arising from the confidentiality of information may be representative of a party based on conduct occurring
waived in a record or orally during a proceeding by the during a mediation.
mediator and the mediation parties.
(b) If a court or administrative agency finds, after a
(b) With the consent of the mediation parties, a hearing in camera, that the party seeking discovery of
privilege arising from the confidentiality of the proponent of the evidence has shown that the
information may likewise be waived by a non-party evidence is not otherwise available, that there is a need
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 97

for the evidence that substantially outweighs the applicable internal rules of the mediation service
interest in protecting confidentially, and the mediation providers under whose rules the mediation is
communication is sought or offered in: conducted.

(i) a court proceeding involving a crime or felony; or (b) A mediation service provider may determine such
mediation fee as is reasonable taking into
(ii) a proceeding to prove a claim or defense that under consideration the following factors, among others:
the law is sufficient to reform or avoid a liability on a
contract arising out of the mediation. (i) the complexity of the case;

(c) A mediator may not be compelled to provide (ii) the number of hours spent in mediation; and
evidence of a mediation communication or testify in
such proceeding. (iii) the training, experience and stature of mediators.

(d) If a mediation communication is not privileged CHAPTER 4


under an exception in sub-section (a) or (b) hereof, INTERNATIONAL COMMERCIAL ARBITRATION
only the portion of the communication necessary for
the application of the exception for non-disclosure may RULE 1 General Provisions
be admitted. The admission of a particular evidence for
the limited purpose of an exception does not render Article 4.1. Scope of Application. (a) This Chapter
that evidence, or any other mediation communication, applies to international commercial arbitration,
admissible for any other purpose. subject to any agreement in force between the
Philippines and other state or states.
Article 3.24. Non-Reporting or Communication by
Mediator. A mediator may not make a report, (b) This Chapter applies only if the place or seat of
assessment, evaluation, recommendation, finding or arbitration is the Philippines and in default of any
other communication regarding a mediation to a court agreement of the parties on the applicable rules.
or agency or other authority that may make a ruling on
a dispute that is the subject of a mediation, except: (c) This Chapter shall not affect any other law of the
Philippines by virtue of which certain disputes may not
(a) to state that the mediation occurred or has be submitted to arbitration or may be submitted to
terminated, or where a settlement was reached; or arbitration only according to provisions other than
those of the ADR Act.
(b) as permitted to be disclosed under Article 3.23
(Exception to the Privilege of Confidentiality of Article 4.2. Rules of Interpretation. (a) International
Information). commercial arbitration shall be governed by the Model
Law on International Commercial Arbitration.
The parties may, by an agreement in writing, stipulate
that the settlement agreement shall be sealed and not (b) In interpreting this Chapter, regard shall be had to
disclosed to any third party including the court. Such the international origin of the Model Law and to the
stipulation, however, shall not apply to a proceeding to need for uniformity in its interpretation. Resort may be
enforce or set aside the settlement agreement. made to the travaux preparatoires and the Report of
the Secretary-General of the United Nations
RULE 10 Fees and Cost of Mediation Commission on International Trade Law dated March
1985 entitled, "International Commercial Arbitration:
Article 3.25. Fees and Cost of Ad hoc Mediation. In ad Analytical Commentary on Draft Text identified by
hoc mediation, the parties are free to make their own reference number A/CN. 9/264".
arrangement as to mediation cost and fees. In default
thereof, the schedule of cost and fees to be approved by (c) Moreover, in interpreting this Chapter, the court
the OADR shall be followed. shall have due regard to the policy of the law in favor of
arbitration and the policy of the Philippines to actively
Article 3.26. Fees and Cost of Institutional Mediation. promote party autonomy in the resolution of disputes
(a) In institutional mediation, mediation cost shall or the freedom of the parties to make their own
include the administrative charges of the mediation arrangement to resolve their dispute.
institution under which the parties have agreed to be
bound, mediators fees and associated expenses, if any. (d) Where a provision of this Chapter, except the Rules
In default of agreement of the parties as to the amount applicable to the substance of the dispute, leaves the
and manner of payment of mediations cost and fees, parties free to determine a certain issue, such freedom
the same shall be determined in accordance with the includes the right of the parties to authorize a third
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 98

party, including an institution, to make that and paragraph (a) of Article 4.14 (Failure or
determination. Impossibility to Act) shall be performed by the
appointing authority as defined in Article 1.6 C1, unless
(e) Where a provision of this Chapter refers to the fact the latter shall fail or refuse to act within thirty (30)
that the parties have agreed or that they may agree or days from receipt of the request in which case the
in any other way refers to an agreement of the parties, applicant may renew the application with the court.
such agreement includes any arbitration rules referred The appointment of an arbitrator is not subject to
to in that agreement. appeal or motion for reconsideration.

(f) Where a provision of this Chapter, other than in (b) The functions referred to in paragraph (c) of Article
paragraph (a) of Article 4.25 (Default of a Party) and 4.16 (c) (Competence of Arbitral Tribunal to Rule on its
paragraphs (b) (i) of Article 4.32 (Termination of Jurisdiction), second paragraph of Article 4.34
Proceedings), refers to a claim, it also applies to a (Application for Setting Aside an Exclusive Recourse
counter-claim, and where it refers to a defense, it also Against Arbitral Award), Article 4.35 (Recognition and
applies to a defense to such counter-claim. Enforcement), Article 4.38 (Venue and Jurisdiction),
shall be performed by the appropriate Regional Trial
Article 4.3. Receipt of Written Communications. (a) Court.
Unless otherwise agreed by the parties:
(c) A Court may not refuse to grant, implement or
(i) any written communication is deemed to have been enforce a petition for an interim measure, including
received if it is delivered to the addressee personally or those provided for in Article 4.9 (Arbitration
at his/her place of business, habitual residence or Agreement and Interim Measures by Court), Article 4.
mailing address; if none of these can be found after 11 (Appointment of Arbitrators), Article 4.13
making a reasonable inquiry, a written communication (Challenge Procedure), Article 4,27 (Court Assistance
is deemed to have been received if it is sent to the in Taking Evidence), on the sole ground that the
addressees last known place of business, habitual Petition is merely an ancillary relief and the principal
residence or mailing address by registered letter or any action is pending with the arbitral tribunal.
other means which provides a record of the attempt to
deliver it; RULE 2- Arbitration Agreement

(ii) the communication is deemed to have been Article 4.7 Definition and Form of Arbitration
received on the day it is so delivered. Agreement. The Arbitration agreement, as defined in
Articles 1.6 A4, shall be in writing. An agreement is in
(b) The provisions of this Article do not apply to writing if it is contained in a document signed by the
communications in court proceedings, which shall be parties or in an exchange of letters, telex, telegrams or
governed by the Rules of Court. other means of telecommunication which provide a
record of the agreement, or in an exchange of
Article 4.4. Waiver of Right to Object. Any party who statements of claim and defense in which the existence
knows that any provision of this Chapter from which of an agreement, or in an exchange of statements of
the parties may derogate or any requirement under the claim and defense in which the existence of an
arbitration agreement has not been complied with and agreement is alleged by one party and not denied by
yet proceeds with the arbitration without stating the another. The reference in a contract to a document
objections for such non-compliance without undue containing an arbitration clause constitutes an
delay or if a time limit is provided therefor, within such arbitration agreement provided that the contracts is
period of time, shall be deemed to have waived the writing and the reference is such as to make that clause
right to object. part of the contract.

Article 4.5. Extent of Court Intervention. In matters Article 4.8 Arbitration Agreement and Substantive
governed by this Chapter, no court shall intervene Claim Before Court. (a) A court before which an action
except where so provided in the ADR Act. Resort to is brought in a matter which is the subject of an
Philippine courts for matters within the scope of the arbitration agreement shall, if at least one party so
ADR Act shall be governed by the Special ADR Rules. requests of both parties thereafter, refer the parties to
arbitration unless it finds that the arbitration
Article 4.6. Court or Other Authority for Certain agreement is null and void, inoperative or incapable of
Functions of Arbitration Assistance and Supervision. being performed.

(a) The functions referred to in paragraphs (c) and (d) (b) Where an action referred to in the previous
of Article 4.11 (Appointment of Arbitrators) and paragraph has been brought , arbitral proceedings may
paragraph (c) of Article 4.13 (Challenge Procedure) nevertheless be commenced or continued, and an
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 99

award may be made, while the issue is pending before days of their appointment shall be made, upon request
the court. of a party, by the appointing authority;

(c) Where the action is commenced by or against (ii) in an arbitration with a sole arbitrator, if the
multiple parties, one or more of whom are parties to an parties are unable to agree on the arbitrator, he/she
arbitration agreement, the court shall refer to shall be appointed, upon request of a party, by the
arbitration those parties who are bound by the appointing authority.
arbitration agreement although the civil action may
continue as to those who are not bound by such (d) Where, under an appointment procedure agreed
arbitration agreement. upon the parties,

Article 4.9 Arbitration Agreement and Interim (i) a party fails to act as required under such
Measures by Court. (a) It is not incompatible with an procedure, or
arbitration agreement for a party to request from a
court, before the constitution of the arbitral tribunal or (ii) the parties , or two arbitrators, are unable to reach
during arbitral proceedings, an interim measure of an agreement expected of them under such procedure,
protection and for a court to grant such measure. or

(b) To the extent that the arbitral tribunal has no (iii) a third party, including an institution, fails to
power to act or is unable to act effectively, a request for perform any function entrusted to it under such
interim measure of protection, or modification thereof procedure,
as provided for, and in the manner indicated in ,
Article 4.17 (Power of Tribunal to Order Interim Any party may request the appointing authority to take
Measures ), may be made with the court. the necessary measure to appoint an arbitrator, unless
the agreement on the appointment procedure provides
The rules of interim or provisional relief provided for other means for securing the appointment.
in paragraph ( c ) of Article 4.17 of these Rules shall be
observed. (e) A decision on a matter entrusted by paragraphs (c)
and (d) of this to the appointing authority shall be
A party may bring a petition under this Article before immediate executory and not be subject to a motion
the court in accordance with the Rules of Court or the for reconsideration or appeal. The appointing
Special ADR Rules. authority shall have in appointing an arbitrator, due
regard to any qualifications required of the arbitrator
RULE 3 Composition of Arbitral Tribunal by the agreement of the parties and to such
considerations as are likely to secure the appointment
Article 4.10 Number of Arbitrators. The parties are free of an independent and impartial arbitrator and, in the
to determine the number of arbitrators Failing such case of a sole or third arbitrator , shall take into
determination, the number of arbitrators shall be three account as well the advisability of appointing an
(3). arbitrator of a nationality other than the Rules of Court
of the Special ADR Rules.
Article 4.11. Appointment of Arbitrators. (a) No person
shall be produced by reason of his/her nationality from Article 4.12 Grounds for Challenge. (a) When a person
acting as an arbitrator, unless otherwise agreed by the is approached in connection with his/her possible
parties. appointment as an arbitrator, he/she impartiality or
independence. An arbitrator, from the time of his/her
(b) The parties are free to agree on a procedure of appointment and throughout the arbitral proceedings
appointing the arbitrator or arbitrators, subject to shall, without delay, disclose any such circumstance to
provisions of paragraphs (d) and (e) of this Article. the parties unless they have already been informed of
them him/her.
(c) Failing such agreement:
(b) An arbitrator may be challenged only if
(i) in an arbitration with three (3 ) arbitrators, each circumstances exist that give rise to justifiable doubts
party shall appoint one arbitrator, and the two (2) as to his/her impartiality or independence, or if he/she
arbitrators thus appointed shall appoint the third does not possess qualifications agreed to by the
arbitrator; if any party fails to appoint the arbitrator parties. A party may challenge an arbitrator appointed
within thirty (30) days of receipt of a request to do so by him/her, or in whose appointment he/she has
from the other party, or if the two (2) arbitrators fail to participated, only for reasons of which he/she becomes
agree on the third arbitrator within thirty days (30) aware after the appointment has been made.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 100

of the revocation of his/her mandate, a substitute
Article 4.13. Challenge Procedure. (a) The parties are arbitrator shall be appointed according to the rules
free to agree on a procedure for challenging an that were applicable to the appointment of the
arbitrator, subject to the provisions of this Article. arbitrator being replaced.

(b) Failing such agreement, a party who intends to RULE 4 Jurisdiction of Arbitral Tribunal
challenge an arbitrator shall, within fifteen (15) days
after becoming aware of the constitution of the arbitral Article 4.16. Competence of Arbitral Tribunal to Rule
tribunal or after becoming aware of any circumstances on its Jurisdiction. (a) The arbitral tribunal may rule
referred to in paragraph (b) of Article 4.12 (Grounds on its own jurisdiction, including any objections with
for Challenge,) send a written statement of the reasons respect to the existence or validity of the arbitration
for the challenge to the arbitral tribunal. Unless the agreement or any condition precedent to the filing of
challenged arbitrator withdraws from his/her office or the request for arbitration. For that purpose, an
the other party agrees to the challenged arbitrator arbitration clause, which forms part of a contract shall
withdraws from his/her office or the party agrees to be treated as an agreement independent of the other
the challenge, the arbitral tribunal shall decide on the terms of the contract. A decision by the arbitral
challenge. tribunal that the contract is null and void shall not
entail ipso jure the invalidity of the arbitration clause.
(c) If a challenge under any procedure agreed upon by
the parties or under the procedure of paragraph (b) of (b) A plea that the arbitral tribunal does not have
this Article is not successful, the challenging party may jurisdiction shall be raised not later than the
request the appointing authority, within thirty (30) submission of the statement of defense (I.e., in an
days after having received notice of the decision Answer or Motion to Dismiss). A party is not precluded
rejecting the challenge, to decide on the challenge, from raising such plea by the fact that he/she has
which decision shall be immediately executory and not appointed, or participated in the appointment of, an
subject to motion for reconsideration or appeal. While arbitrator. A plea that the arbitral tribunal is exceeding
such a request is pending, the arbitral tribunal, the scope of its authority shall be raised as soon as the
including the challenged arbitrator, may continue the matter alleged to be beyond the scope of its authority is
arbitral proceedings and make an award. raised during the arbitral proceedings. The arbitral
tribunal may, in either case, admit a later plea if it
A party may bring a petition under this Article before considers the delay justified.
the court in accordance with the Rules of Court or the
Special ADR Rules. (c) The arbitral tribunal may rule on a plea referred to
in paragraph (b) of this Article either as a preliminary
Article 4.14. Failure or Impossibility to Act. (a) If an question or in an award on the merits. If the arbitral
arbitrator becomes de jure or de facto unable to tribunal rules as a preliminary question that it has
perform his/her functions or for other reasons fails to jurisdiction, any party may request, within thirty (30)
act without undue delay, his/her mandate terminates if days after having received notice of that ruling, the
he/she withdraws from his/her office or if the parties Regional Trial Court to decide the matter, which
agree on the termination. Otherwise, if the controversy decision shall be immediately executory and not
remains concerning any of these grounds, any party subject to motion for reconsideration or appeal. While
may request the appointing authority to decide on the such a request is pending, the arbitral tribunal may
termination of the mandate, which decision shall be contribute the arbitral proceedings and make an
immediately executory and not subject for motion for award.
reconsideration or appeal.
Article 4.17. Power of Arbitral Tribunal to Order
(b) If, under this Article or paragraph (b) of Article Interim Measures. (a) Unless otherwise agreed by the
4.13 (Challenge Procedure), an arbitrator withdraws parties, the arbitral tribunal may, at the request of the
from his/her office or a party agrees for termination of party, order any party to take such interim measures of
the mandate of an arbitrator, this does not imply protection as the arbitral tribunal may consider
acceptance of the validity of any ground referred to in necessary in respect of the subject to matter of the
this Article or in paragraph (b) of Article 4.12 (Grounds dispute following paragraph (c) of this Article. Such
for Challenge). interim measures may include, but shall not be limited
to, preliminary injunction directed against a party,
Article 4.15. Appointment of Substitute Arbitrator. appointment of receivers, or detention, preservation,
Where the mandate of an arbitrator terminates under inspection of property that is the subject of the dispute
Articles 4.13 (Challenge Procedure) and 4.14 (Failure in arbitration.
or Impossibility to Act) or because of his/her
withdrawal from office for any other reason or because
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 101

(b) After constitution of the arbitral tribunal, and Article 4.19. Determination of the Rules of Procedure.
during arbitral proceeding, a request for interim (a) Subject to the provisions of this Chapter, the parties
measures of protection, or modification thereof shall are free to agree on the procedure to be followed by the
be made with the arbitral tribunal. The arbitral arbitral tribunal in conducting the proceedings.
tribunal is deemed constituted when the sole arbitrator
or the third arbitrator, who has been nominated, has (b) Falling such agreement, the arbitral tribunal may,
accepted the nomination and written communication subject to this Chapter, conduct the arbitration in such
of said nomination and acceptance has been received manner as it considers appropriate. Unless the arbitral
by the party making the request. tribunal considers it inappropriate, the UNCITRAL
Arbitration Rules adopted by the UNCITRAL on 28
(c) The following rules on interim or provisional relief April 1976 and the UN General Assemble on 15
shall be observed: December 1976 shall apply subject to the following
clarification: All references to the "Secretary-General
(i) Any party may request that the interim or of the Permanent Court of Arbitration at the Hague"
provisional relief shall be observed: shall be deemed to refer to the appointing authority.

(ii) Such relief may be granted: (c) The power conferred upon the arbitral tribunal
includes the power to determine the admissibility,
(aa) To prevent irreparable loss or injury; relevance, materiality and weight of any evidence.

(bb) To provide security for the performance of an Article 4.20. Place of Arbitration. (a) The parties are
obligation; free to agree on the place of arbitration. Failing such
agreement, the place of arbitration shall be in Metro
(cc) To produce or preserve evidence Manila unless the arbitral tribunal, having regard to
the circumstances of the case, including the
(dd) To compel any other appropriate acts or convenience of the parties, shall decide on a different
omissions. place of arbitration.

(iii) The order granting provisional relief may be (b) Notwithstanding the rule stated in paragraph (a) of
conditioned upon the provision of security or any act this provision, the arbitral tribunal may, unless
or omission specified in order. otherwise agreed by the parties, meet at any place it
considers appropriate for consultation among its
(iv) Interim or provisional relief is requested by members, for hearing witnesses, experts or the parties,
written application transmitted by reasonable means or for inspection of goods, other property or
to the arbitral tribunal and the party against whom documents.
relief is sought, describing in appropriate details of the
precise relief, the party against whom the relief is Article 4.21. Commencement of Arbitral Proceedings.
requested, the ground for the relief, and the evidence, Unless otherwise agreed by the parties, the arbitral
supporting the request. proceedings in respect of a particular dispute
commence on the date on which a request for that
(v) The order granting or denying an application for dispute to be referred to arbitration is received by the
the interim relief shall be binding upon the parties. respondent.

(vi) Either party may apply with the court for Article 4.22. Language. (a) The parties are free to agree
assistance in implementing or enforcing an interim on the language or languages to be used in the arbitral
measure ordered by an arbitral tribunal. proceedings. Failing such agreement, the language to
be used shall be English. This agreement, unless
(vii) A party who does not comply with the order shall otherwise specified therein, shall apply to any written
be liable for all damages, resulting from statement by a party, any hearing and any award,
noncompliance, including all expenses, and reasonable decision or other communication by the arbitral
attorney's fees, paid in obtaining the order's judicial tribunal.
enforcement.
(b) The arbitral tribunal may order that any
RULE 5 Conduct of Arbitral Proceedings documentary evidence shall be accompanied by a
translation into the language or languages agreed upon
Article 4.18. Equal Treatment of Parties. The parties by the parties or determined by the arbitral tribunal in
shall be treated with equality and each shall be given a accordance with paragraph (a) of this Article.
full opportunity of presenting his/her case.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 102

Article 4.23 Statements of Claim and Defense. (a) continue the proceedings and make the award on the
Within the period of time agreed by the parties or evidence before it.
determined by the arbitral tribunal, the claimant shall
state the facts supporting his/her/its claim, the points Article 4.26. Expert Appointed by the Arbitral
at issue and the relief or remedy sought, and the Tribunal. Unless otherwise agreed by the parties, the
respondent shall state his/her/its defense in respect of arbitral tribunal,
these particulars, unless the parties have otherwise
agreed as to the required elements of such statements. (a) may appoint one or more experts to report to it on
The parties may submit with their statements, all specific issues to be determined by the arbitral
documents they consider to be relevant or may add a tribunal; or
reference to the documents or other evidence they will
submit. (b) may require a party to give the expert any relevant
information or to produce, or to provide access to, any
(b) Unless otherwise agreed by the parties, either party relevant documents, goods or other property for
may amend or supplement his/her claim or defense his/her inspection.
during the course of the arbitral proceedings, unless
the arbitral tribunal considers it inappropriate to allow Unless otherwise agreed by the parties, if a party so
such amendment having regard to the delay in making requests or if the arbitral tribunal considers it
it. necessary, the expert shall, after delivery of his/her
written or oral report, participate in a hearing where
Article 4.24 Hearing and Written Proceedings. (a) the parties have the opportunity to put questions to
Subject to any contrary agreement by the parties, the him and to present expert witnesses in order to testify
arbitral tribunal shall decide whether to hold oral on the points at issue.
hearings for the presentation of evidence or for oral
argument, or whether the proceedings shall be Article 4.27. Court Assistance in Taking Evidence. The
conducted on the basis of documents and other arbitral tribunal or a party with the approval of the
materials. However, unless the parties have agreed arbitral tribunal may request from a court of the
that no hearings at an appropriate stage of the Philippines assistance in taking evidence. The court
proceedings, if so requested by a party. may execute the request within its competence and
according to its rules on taking evidence.
(b) The parties shall be given sufficient advance notice
of any hearing and of any meeting of the arbitral The arbitral tribunal shall have the power to require
tribunal for the purposes of inspection goods, other any person to attend a hearing as a witness. The
property or documents. arbitral tribunal shall have the power to subpoena
witnesses and documents when the relevancy of the
(c) All statements, documents or other information testimony and the materiality thereof has been
supplied to the arbitral by one party shall be demonstrated to it. The arbitral tribunal may also
communicated to the other party. Also, an expert require the retirement of any witness during the
report or evidentiary document on which the arbitral testimony of any other witness.
tribunal may rely in making its decision shall be
communicated to the parties. A party may bring a petition under this Section before
the court in accordance with the Rules of Court or the
Article 4.25 Default of a Party. Unless otherwise agreed Special ADR Rules.
by the parties, if, without, showing sufficient cause,
Article 4.28. Rules Applicable to the Substance of
(a) the claimant fails to communicate his statement of Dispute. (a) The arbitral tribunal shall decide the
claim in accordance with paragraph (a) Article 4.23 dispute in accordance with such rules of law as are
(Statement of Claim and Defense), the arbitral tribunal chosen by the parties as applicable to the substance of
shall terminate the proceedings; the dispute. Any designation of the law or legal system
of a given state shall be construed, unless otherwise
(b) the respondent fails to communicate his/her/its expressed, as directly referring to the substantive law
statement of defense in accordance with paragraph (a) of that state and not its conflict of laws rules.
Article 4.23 (Statement of Claim and Defense), the
arbitral tribunal shall continue the proceedings (b) Failing any designation by the parties, the arbitral
without treating such failure in itself as an admission tribunal shall apply the law determined by the conflict
of the claimants allegations. of laws rules, which it considers applicable.

(c) any partys fails to appear at a hearing or to produce


documentary evidence, the arbitral tribunal may
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 103

(c) The arbitral tribunal shall decide ex aequo et bono tribunal shall issue an order for the termination of the
or as amiable compositeur only if the parties have arbitral proceedings when:
expressly authorized it to do so.
(i) The claimant withdraws his/her/its claim, unless
(d) In all cases, the arbitral tribunal shall decide in the respondent objects thereto and the arbitral
accordance with the terms of the contract and shall tribunal recognized a legitimate interest on his/her/its
take into account the usages of the trade applicable to part in obtaining a final settlement of the dispute;
the transaction.
(ii) The parties agree the termination of the
Article 4.29. Decision-Making by Panel of Arbitrators. proceedings;
In arbitral proceedings with more than one arbitrator,
any decision of the arbitral tribunal shall be made, (iii) The arbitral tribunal finds that the continuation of
unless otherwise agreed by other parties, by a majority the proceedings has for any other reason become
of all its members. However, questions of procedure unnecessary or impossible.
may be decided by a presiding arbitrator , if so
authorized by the parties or all members of the arbitral (c) The mandate of the arbitral tribunal ends with
tribunal. termination of the arbitral proceedings subject to the
provisions of Articles 4.33 (Correction and
Article 4.30. Settlement. If, during arbitral Interpretation of Award, Additional Award) and
proceedings, the parties settle the dispute, the arbitral paragraph (d) of Articles 4.34 (Application for Setting
tribunal shall terminate the proceedings and, if Aside an Exclusive Recourse against Arbitral Award).
requested by the parties and not objected to by the
arbitral tribunal, record the settlement in the form of (d) Notwithstanding the foregoing, the arbitral
an arbitral award on agreed terms. tribunal may, for special reasons, reserve in the final
award or order, a hearing to quantity costs and
An award on agreed terms shall be made in accordance determine which party shall bear the costs or the
with the provisions of Article 4.31 (Form and Contents division thereof as may be determined to be equitable.
of Award), and shall state that it is an award. Such an Pending determination of this issue, the award shall
award has the same status and effect as any other not be deemed final for purposes of appeal ,vacation,
award on the merits of the case. correction, or any post-award proceedings.

Article 4.31. Form and Contents of Award. (a) The Article 4.33. Correction and Interpretation of Award,
award shall be made in writing and shall be signed by Additional Award. (a) Within thirty (30) days from
the arbitrator or arbitrators. In arbitral proceedings receipt of the award, unless another period of time has
with more than one arbitrator, the signatures of the been agreed upon by the parties:
majority of all members of the arbitral tribunal shall
suffice, provided that the reason for any omitted (i) A party may, with notice to the other party, request
signature is stated. the arbitral tribunal to correct in the award any errors
in computation, any clerical or typographical errors or
(b) The award shall state the reasons upon which it is any errors of similar nature;
based, unless the parties have agreed that no reasons
are to be given or the award is an award on agreed (ii) A party may, it so agreed by the parties and with
terms under paragraph (a) of Article 4.20 (Place of notice to the other party, request the arbitral tribunal
Arbitration). to give an interpretation of a specific point or part of
the award.
(c) The award shall state its date and the place of
arbitration as determined in accordance with (b) If the arbitral tribunal considers the request to be
paragraph (a) of this Article. The award shall be justified, It shall make the correction or give the
deemed to have been made at that place. interpretation within thirty (30) days from receipt of
the request. The interpretation shall form part of the
(d) After the award is made, a copy signed by the award.
arbitrators in accordance with paragraph (a) of this
Article shall be delivered. to each party. (c) The arbitral tribunal may correct any error of the
type referred to in paragraph (a) of this Article on its
Article 4.32. Termination of Proceedings. (a) The own initiative within thirty (30) day from the date of
arbitral proceedings are terminated by the final award the award
or by an order of the arbitral tribunal in accordance
with paragraph (b) of this Article. (b) The arbitral (d) Unless otherwise agreed by the parties, a party
may, with notice to the other party, request, within
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 104

thirty (30) days receipt of the award, the arbitral
tribunal to make an additional award as to claims (aa) the subject-matter of the dispute is not capable of
presented in the arbitral proceedings but omitted from settlement by arbitration under the law of the
the award. If the arbitral tribunal considers the request Philippines; or
to be justified, it shall make the additional award
within sixty (60) days (bb) the award is in conflict with the public policy of
the Philippines.
(e) The arbitral tribunal may extend, if necessary, the
period of time within which it shall make a correction (c) An application for setting aside may not be made
interpretation or an additional award under after three months have elapsed from the date on
paragraphs (a) and (b) of this Article. which the party making that application had received
the award or, If a request had been made under Article
(f) The provisions of Article 4.31 (Form and Contents 4.33 (Correction and Interpretation of Award,
of Award) shall apply to a correction or interpretation Additional Award) from the date on which that request
of the award or to an additional award. has been disposed of by the Arbitral tribunal

Article 4.34. Aplication for Setting Aside an Exclusive (d) The court, when asked to set aside an award, may,
Recourse against Arbitral Award. where appropriate and so requested by a party,
suspend the setting aside proceedings for a period of
(a) Recourse to a court against an arbitral award may time determined by it in order to give the arbitral
be made only by application for setting aside in tribunal an opportunity resume the arbitral
accordance with second and third paragraphs of this proceedings or take such other action as in the arbitral
Article. tribunal's opinion will eliminate the grounds for
setting aside.
(b) An arbitral award may be set aside by the Regional
Trial Court only If: (e) A party may bring a petition under this Article
before the court in accordance with the Special ADR
(i) the party making the application furnishes proof Rules.
that:
RULE 6 Recognition and Enforcement of Awards
(aa) a party to the arbitration agreement was under
some incapacity ; or the said agreement is not valid Article 4.35. Recognition and Enforcement. (a) A
under the law to which the parties have subjected it or, foreign arbitral award shall be recognized as binding
failing any indication thereon, under the law of the and, upon petition in writing to the regional trial
Philippines; or Court, shall be enforced subject to the provisions of
this Article and of Article 4.36 (Grounds for Refusing
(bb) the party making the application was not given Recognition or Enforcement).
proper notice of the appointment of an arbitrator or of
the arbitral proceedings or was otherwise unable to (b) The petition for recognition and enforcement of
present his case; or such arbitral awards shall be filled with the Regional
trial Court In accordance with Special ADR Rules.
(cc) the award deals with a dispute not contemplated
by or not failing within the terms of the submission to (i) Convention Award - The New York Convention shall
arbitration, or contains, decisions on matters beyond govern the recognition and enforcement of arbitral
the scope of the submission to arbitration, provided awards covered by said Convention. The petitioner
that, if the decisions on matters submitted to shall establish that the country in which the foreign
arbitration can be separated from those not so arbitration award was made is a party to the New York
submitted, only the part of the award which contains Convention
decisions on matters not submitted to arbitration may
be set aside; or (ii) Non-Convention Award The recognition and
enforcement of foreign arbitral awards not covered by
(dd) the composition of the arbitral tribunal or the the New York Convention shall be done in accordance
arbitral procedure was not in accordance with the with procedural rules to be promulgated by the
agreement of the parties, unless such agreement was in Supreme Court. The court may, on grounds of comity
conflict with a provision of ADR Act from which the and reciprocity, recognize and enforce a non-
parties cannot derogate, or, falling such agreement, convention award as a convention award.
was not in accordance with ADR Act; or
(c) The party relying on an award or applying for its
(ii) the Court finds that: enforcement shall file with the Regional Trial Court the
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 105

original or duly authenticated copy of the award and decisions on matters submitted to arbitration may be
the original arbitration agreement or a duly recognized and enforced; or
authenticated copy thereof. If the award or agreement
is not made in an official language of the Philippines, (d) the composition of the arbitral tribunal or the
the party shall supply a duly certified translation arbitral procedure was not in accordance with the
thereof into such language. agreement of the parties or, failing such agreement,
was not in accordance with the law of the country
(d) A foreign arbitral award when confirmed by a court where the arbitration too place; or
of a foreign country, shall be recognized and enforced
as a foreign arbitral award and not as a judgment of a (e) the award has not become binding on the parties or
foreign court. has been set aside or suspended by a court of the
country in which, or under the law of which, that
(e) A foreign arbitral award when confirmed by the award was made.
Regional Trial Court, shall be enforced in the same
manner as final and executory decisions of courts of Recognition and enforcement of an arbitral award may
law of the Philippines. also be refused if the Regional Trial Court where
recognition and enforcement is sought finds that:
(f) If the Regional Trial Court has recognized the
arbitral award but an application for rejection and/or) (a) the subject-matter of the dispute is not capable of
suspension of enforcement of that award is settlement by arbitration under the law of Philippines;
subsequently made, the Regional Trial Court may, if it or
considers the application to be proper, vacate or
suspend the decision to enforce that award and may (b) the recognition or enforcement of the award would
also, on the application of the party claiming be contrary to the public policy of the Philippines.
recognition or enforcement of that award, order the
other party seeking rejection or suspension to provide A party to a foreign arbitration proceeding may oppose
appropriate security. an application for recognition and enforcement of the
arbitral award in accordance with the Special ADR
Article 4.36. Grounds for Refusing Recognition or Rules only on the grounds enumerated under
Enforcement. paragraph (a) and (c) of Article 4.35 (Recognition and
Enforcement). Any other ground raised shall be
A CONVENTION AWARD. disregarded by the Regional Trial Court.

Recognition or enforcement of an arbitral award, made B. NON-CONVENTION AWARD.


in a state, which is a party to the New York
Convention, may be refused, at the request of the party (a) A foreign arbitral award rendered in a state which
against whom it is provoked, only if the party furnishes is not a party to the New York Convention will be
to the Regional Trial Court proof that: recognized upon proof of the existence of comity and
reciprocity and may be treated as a convention award.
(a) The parties to the arbitration agreement are, under If not so treated and if no comity or reciprocity exists,
the law applicable to them, under some incapacity; or the non-convention award cannot be recognized
the said agreement is not valid under the law to which and/or enforced but may be deemed as presumptive
the parties have subjected it or; failing any indication evidence of a right as between the parties in
thereon, under the law of the country where the award accordance with Section 48 of the Rules of Court.
was made; or
(b) If the Regional Trial Court has recognized the
(b) the party against whom the award is invoked was arbitral award but a petition for suspension of
not given proper notice of the appointment of an enforcement of that award is subsequently made, the
arbitrator or of the arbitral proceedings or was Regional Trial Court may, if it considers the petition to
otherwise in able to present his case; or be proper, suspend the proceedings to enforce the
award, and may also, on the application of the party
(c) the award deals with dispute not contemplated by claiming recognition or enforcement of that award,
or not failing within the terms of the submission to order the other party seeking suspension to provide
arbitration, or it contains decisions on matters beyond appropriate security.
the scope of the submission to arbitration; provided
that, if the decisions on matters submitted to (c) If the petition for recognition or enforcement of the
arbitration can be separated from those not so arbitral award is filed by a party and a counter-petition
submitted, that part of the award which contains for the rejection of the arbitral award is filed by the
other party, the Regional Trial Court may, if it
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 106

considers the counter-petition to be proper but the Article 4.40. Legal Representation in International
objections thereto may be rectified or cured, remit the Commercial Arbitration. In international commercial
award to the arbitral tribunal for appropriate action arbitration conducted in the Philippines, a party may
and in the meantime suspend the recognition and be represented by any person of his/her choice:
enforcement proceedings and may also on the Provided, that such representative, unless admitted to
application of the petitioner order the counter- the practice of law in the Philippines, shall not be
petitioner to provide appropriate security. authorized to appear as counsel in any Philippine court
or any other quasi-judicial body whether or not such
Article 4.37. Appeal from Court Decision on Arbitral appearance is in relation to the arbitration in which
Awards. A decision of the Regional Trial Court he/she appears.
recognizing, enforcing, vacating or setting aside an
arbitral award may be appealed to the Court of Appeals Article 4.41. Confidentially of Arbitration Proceedings.
in accordance with the rules of procedure to be The arbitration proceedings, including the records,
promulgated by the Supreme Court. evidence and the arbitral award, shall be considered
confidential and shall not be poolside except:
The losing party who appeals from the judgment of the
court recognizing and enforcing an arbitral award shall (a) with the consent of the parties; or
be required by the Court of Appeals to post a counter-
bond executed if favor of the prevailing party equal to (b) for the limited purpose of disclosing to the court
the amount of the award in accordance with the relevant documents in cases where resort to the court
Special ADR Rules. is allowed herein.

Any stipulation by the parties that the arbitral Provided, however, that the court in which the action
tribunals award or decision shall be final, and or the appeal is pending may issue a protective order to
therefore not appealable, is valid. Such stipulation prevent or prohibit disclosure of documents or
carries with it a waiver of the right to appeal from an information containing secret processes,
arbitral award but without prejudice to judicial review developments, research and other information where it
by way of certiorari under Rule 65 of the Rules of is shown that the applicant shall be materially
Court. prejudiced by an authorized disclosure thereof.

Article 4.38. Venue and Jurisdiction. Proceedings for Article 4.42. Summary nature of proceedings before
recognition and enforcement of an arbitration the court. A petition for recognition and enforcement
agreement or for vacation or setting aside of an arbitral of awards brought before the court shall be heard and
award, and any application with a court for arbitration dealt with summarily in accordance with the Special
assistance and supervision, except appeal, shall be ADR Rules.
deemed as special proceedings and shall be filed with
the Regional Trial Court where: Article 4.43. Death of a Party. Where a party dies after
making a submission or a contract to arbitrate as
(a) the arbitration proceedings are conducted; prescribed in these Rules, the proceedings may be
begun or continued upon the application of, or notice
(b) where the asset to be attached or levied upon, or to, his/her executor or administrator, or temporary
the act to be enjoined is located; administrator of his/her estate. In any such case, the
court may issue an order extending the time within
(c) where any of the parties to the dispute resides or which notice of a motion to recognize or vacate an
has its place of business; or award must be served. Upon recognizing an award,
where a party has died since it was filed or delivered,
(d) in the National Capital Judicial Region at the the court must enter judgement in the name of the
option of the applicant. original party; and the proceedings thereupon are the
same as where a party dies after a verdict.
Article 4.39. Notice of Proceedings to Parties. In a
special proceeding for recognition and enforcement of Article 4.44. Multi-Party Arbitration. When a single
an arbitral award, the court shall send notice to the arbitration involves more than two parties, the
parties at their address of record in the arbitration, or foregoing rules, to the extent possible, shall be used,
if any party cannot be served notice at such address, at subject to such modifications consistent with this
such partys last known address. The notice shall be Chapter as the arbitral tribunal shall deem appropriate
sent at least fifteen (15) days before the date set for the to address possible complexities of a multi-party
initial hearing of the application. arbitration.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 107

Article 4.45. Consolidation of Proceedings and furnish a statement setting forth the basis for
Concurrent Hearings. The parties and the arbitral establishing fees which is customarily followed in
tribunal may agree international cases in which the authority appoints
arbitrators. If the appointing authority consents to
(a) that the arbitration proceedings shall be provide such a statement, the arbitral tribunal, in
consolidated with other arbitration proceedings; or fixing its fees, shall take such information into account
to the extent that it considers appropriate in the
(b) that concurrent hearings shall be held, on such circumstances of the case.
terms as may be agreed.
(c) In cases referred to in the second and third sub-
Unless the parties agree to confer such power on the paragraphs of paragraph (b) of this Article, when a
arbitral tribunal, the tribunal has no power to order party so requests and the appointing authority
consolidation of arbitration proceedings or concurrent consents to perform the function, the arbitral tribunal
hearings. shall fix its fees only after consultation with the
appointing authority which may make any comment it
Article 4.46. Costs. (a) The arbitral tribunal shall fix deems appropriate to the arbitral tribunal concerning
the costs of arbitration in its award. The term "costs" the fees.
include only:
(d) Except as provided in the next sub-paragraph of
(i) The fees of the arbitral tribunal to be stated this paragraph, the costs of arbitration shall, in
separately as to each arbitrator and to be fixed by the principle, be borne by the unsuccessful party.
tribunal itself in accordance with the paragraph (b) of However, the arbitral tribunal may apportion each of
this Article; such costs between the parties if it determines that
apportionment is reasonable, taking into account the
(ii) The travel and other expenses incurred by the circumstances of the case.
arbitrators;
With respect to the costs of legal representation and
(iii) The costs of expert advice and of other assistance assistance referred to in paragraph (c) of paragraph (a)
required by the arbitral tribunal; (iii) of this Article, the arbitral tribunal, taking into
account the circumstances of the case, shall be free to
(iv) The travel and other expenses of witnesses to the determine which party shall bear such costs or may
extent such expenses are approved by the arbitral apportion such costs between the parties if it
tribunal; determines that appointment is reasonable.

(v) The costs for legal representation and assistance of When the arbitral tribunal issues an order for the
the successful party if such costs were claimed during termination of the arbitral proceedings or makes an
the arbitral proceedings, and only to the extent that the award on agreed terms, it shall fix the costs of
arbitral tribunal determines that the amount of such arbitration referred to in paragraphs (b), (c) and (d) of
costs is reasonable; this Article in the context of that order or award.

(v1) Any fees and expenses of the appointing authority. (e) The arbitral tribunal, on its establishment, may
request each party to deposit an equal amount as an
(b) The fees of the arbitral tribunal shall be reasonable advance for the costs referred to in paragraphs (i), (ii)
in amount, taking into account the amount in dispute, and (iii) of paragraph (a) of this Article.
the complexity of the subject matter, the time spent by
the arbitrators and any other relevant circumstances of During the course of the arbitral proceedings, the
the case. arbitral tribunal may request supplementary deposits
from the parties.
If an appointing authority has been agreed upon by the
parties and if such authority has issued a schedule of If an appointing authority has been agreed upon by the
fees for arbitrators in international cases which it parties and when a party so requests and the
administers, the arbitral tribunal in fixing its fees shall appointing authority consents to perform the function,
take that schedule of fees into account to the extent the arbitral tribunal shall fix the amounts of any
that it considers appropriate in the circumstances of deposits or supplementary deposits only after
the case. consultation with the appointing authority which may
make any comments to the arbitral tribunal which it
If such appointing authority has not issued a schedule deems appropriate concerning the amount of such
of fees for arbitrators in international cases, any party deposits and supplementary deposits.
may, at any time request the appointing authority to
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 108

If the required deposits are not paid in full within A controversy cannot be arbitrated where one of the
thirty (30) days after receipt of the request, the arbitral parties to the controversy is an infant, or a person
tribunal shall so inform the parties in order that the judicially declared to be incompetent, unless the
required payment may be made. If such payment is not appropriate court having jurisdiction approved a
made, the arbitral tribunal may order the suspension petition for permission to submit such controversy to
or termination of the arbitral proceedings. arbitration made by the general guardian or guardian
ad litem of the infant or of the incompetent.
After the award has been made, the arbitral tribunal
shall render an accounting to the parties of the But where a person capable of entering into a
deposits received and return any unexpended balance submission or contract has knowingly entered into the
to the parties. same with a person incapable of so doing, the objection
on the ground of incapacity can be taken only in behalf
CHAPTER 5 of the person so incapacitated.
DOMESTIC ARBITRATION
Article 5.2. Delivery and Receipt of Written
RULE 1 General Provisions Communications. (a) Except as otherwise agreed by
the parties, a written communication from one party to
Article 5.1. Scope of Application. (a) Domestic the other or to the arbitrator or to an arbitration
arbitration, which is not international as defined in institution or from the arbitrator or arbitration
paragraph C8 of Article 1.6 shall continue to be institution to the parties shall be delivered to the
governed by Republic Act No. 876, otherwise known as addressee personally, by registered mail or by courier
"The Arbitration Law", as amended by the ADR Act. service. Such communication shall be deemed to have
Articles 8, 10, 11, 12, 13, 14, 18 and 19 and 29 to 32 of been received on the date it is delivered at the
the Model Law and Sections 22 to 31 of the ADR Act addressees address of record, place of business,
are specifically applicable to domestic arbitration. residence or last known address. The communication,
as appropriate, shall be delivered to each party to the
In the absence of a specific applicable provision, all arbitration and to each arbitrator, and, in institutional
other rules applicable to international commercial arbitration, one copy to the administering institution.
arbitration may be applied in a suppletory manner to
domestic arbitration. (b) During the arbitration proceedings, the arbitrator
may order a mode of delivery and a rule for receipt of
(b) This Chapter shall apply to domestic arbitration written communications different from that provided
whether the dispute is commercial, as defined in in paragraph (a) of this Article.
Section 21 of the ADR Act, or non-commercial, by an
arbitrator who is a private individual appointed by the (c) If a party is represented by counsel or a
parties to hear and resolve their dispute by rendering representative, written communications for that party
an award; Provided that, although a construction shall be delivered to the address of record of such
dispute may be commercial, it shall continue to be counsel or representative.
governed by E.O. No. 1008, s.1985 and the rules
promulgated by the Construction Industry Arbitration (d) Except as the parties may agree or the arbitrator
Commission. may direct otherwise, a written communication may be
delivered by electronic mail or facsimile transmission
(c) Two or more persons or parties may submit to or by such other means that will provide a record of the
arbitration by one or more arbitrators any controversy sending and receipt thereof at the recipients mailbox
existing between them at the time of the submission (electronic inbox). Such communication shall be
and which may be the subject of an action; or the deemed to have been received on the same date of its
parties to any contract may in such contract agree to transmittal and receipt in the mailbox (electronic
settle by arbitration a controversy thereafter arising inbox).
between them. Such submission or contract shall be
valid, enforceable and irrevocable, save upon such Article 5.3. Waiver of Right to Object. (a) A party shall
grounds as exist at law for the revocation of any be deemed to have waived his right to object to non-
contract. compliance with any non-mandatory provision of these
Rules (from which the parties may derogate) or any
Such submission or contract may include questions requirement under the arbitration agreement when:
arising out of valuations, appraisals or other
controversies which may be collateral, incidental, (i) he/she/it knows of such non-compliance; and
precedent or subsequent to any dispute between the
parties. (ii) proceeds with the arbitration without stating
his/her/its objections to such non-compliance without
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 109

undue delay or if a time-limit is provided therefor, (c) Where the action is commenced by or against
within such period of time. multiple parties, one or more of whom are parties to an
arbitration agreement, the court shall refer to
(b) If an act is required or allowed to be done under arbitration those parties who are bound by the
this Chapter, unless the applicable rule or the arbitration agreement although the civil action may
agreement of the parties provides a different period for continue as to those who are not bound by such
the act to be done, it shall be done within a period of arbitration agreement.
thirty (30) days from the date when such act could
have been done with legal effect. Article 5.8. Arbitration Agreement and Interim
Measures by Court. (a) It is not incompatible with an
Article 5.4. Extent of Court Intervention. In matters arbitration agreement for a party to request from a
governed by this Chapter, no court shall intervene court, before the constitution of the arbitral tribunal or
except in accordance with the Special ADR Rules. during arbitral proceedings, an interim measure of
protection and for a court to grant such measure.
Article 5.5. Court or Other Authority for Certain
Functions of Arbitration Assistance and Supervision. (b) After the constitution of the arbitral tribunal and
The functions referred to in paragraphs (c) and (d) of during arbitral proceedings, a request for an interim
Article 5.10 (Appointment of Arbitrators), paragraph measure of protection, or modification thereof, may be
(a) of Article 5.11 (Grounds for Challenge), and made with the arbitral tribunal or to the extent that the
paragraph (a) of Article 5.13 (Failure or Impossibility arbitral tribunal has no power to act or is unable to act
to Act), shall be performed by the appointing authority, effectively, the request may be made with the court.
unless the latter shall fail or refuse to act within thirty
(30) days from receipt of the request in which case, the (c) The following rules on interim or provisional relief
applicant may renew the application with the court. shall be observed:

RULE 2 Arbitration Agreement (i) Any party may request that interim or provisional
relief be granted against the adverse party.
Article 5.6. Form of Arbitration Agreement. An
arbitration agreement shall be in writing. An (ii) Such relief may be granted:
agreement is in writing if it is contained in a document
signed by the parties or in an exchange of letters, telex, (aa) To prevent irreparable loss or injury;
telegrams or other means of telecommunication which
provide a record of the agreement, or in an exchange of (bb) To provide security for the performance of an
statements of claim and defense in which the existence obligation;
of an agreement is alleged by one party and not denied
by the other. The reference in a contract to a document (cc) To produce or preserve evidence; or
containing an arbitration clause constitutes an
arbitration agreement provided that the contract is in (dd) To compel any other appropriate act or omissions.
writing and the reference is such as to make that clause
part of the contract. (iii) The order granting provisional relief may be
conditioned upon the provision of security or any act
Article 5.7. Arbitration Agreement and Substantive or omission specified in the order.
Claim Before Court. (a) A party to an action may
request the court before which it is pending to stay the (iv) Interim or provisional relief is requested by
action and to refer the dispute to arbitration in written application transmitted by reasonable means
accordance with their arbitration agreement not later to the arbitral tribunal and the party against whom
than the pre-trial conference. Thereafter, both parties relief is sought, describing in appropriate detail of the
may make a similar request with the court. The parties precise relief, the party against whom the relief is
shall be referred to arbitration unless the court finds requested, the ground for the relief, and the evidence
that the arbitration agreement is null and void, supporting the request.
inoperative or incapable of being performed.
(v) The order either grating or denying an application
(b) Where an action referred to in paragraph (a) of this for interim relief shall be binding upon the parties.
Article has been brought, arbitral proceedings may
nevertheless be commenced or continued, and an (vi) Either party may apply with the court for
award may be made, while the issue is pending before assistance in implementing or enforcing an interim
the court. measure ordered by an arbitral tribunal.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 110

(vii) A party who does not comply with the order shall their appointment, the appointment shall be made,
be liable for all damages, resulting from upon request of a party, by the appointing authority;
noncompliance, including all expenses, and reasonable
attorneys fees, paid in obtaining the orders judicial (ii) in an arbitration with a sole arbitrator, if the
enforcement. parties are unable to agree on the arbitrator, he/she
shall be appointed, upon request of a party, by the
(d) Unless otherwise agreed by the parties, the arbitral appointing authority.
tribunal may, at the request of a party, order any party
to take such interim measures of protection as the (d) Where, under an appointment procedure agreed
arbitral tribunal may consider necessary in respect of upon by the parties,
the subject matter of the dispute following the Rules in
this Article. Such interim measures may include but (i) a party fails to act or appoint an arbitrator as
shall not be limited to preliminary injunction directed required under such procedure, or
against a party, appointment of receivers or detention,
preservation, inspection of property that is the subject (ii) the parties, or two (2) arbitrators, are unable to
of the dispute in arbitration. Either party may apply appoint an arbitrator or reach an agreement expected
with the court for assistance in implementing or of them under such procedure, or
enforcing an interim measure ordered by an arbitral
tribunal. (iii) a third party, including an institution, fails to
appoint an arbitrator or to perform any function
RULE 3. Composition of Arbitral Tribunal entrusted to it under such procedure, or

Article 5.9. Number of Arbitrators. The parties are free (iv) The multiple claimants or the multiple
to determine the number of arbitrators. Failing such respondents is/are unable to appoint its/their
determination, the number of arbitrators shall be three respective arbitrator, any party may request the
(3). appointing authority to appoint an arbitrator.

Article 5.10. Appointment of Arbitrators. (a) Any In making the appointment, the appointing authority
person appointed to serve as an arbitrator must be of shall summon the parties and their respective counsel
legal age, in full enjoyment of his/her civil rights and to appear before said authority on the date, time and
knows how to read and write. No person appointed to place set by it, for the purpose of selecting and
serve as an arbitrator shall be related by blood or appointing a sole arbitrator. If a sole arbitrator is not
marriage within the sixth degree to either party to the appointed in such meeting, or the meeting does not
controversy. No person shall serve as an arbitrator in take place because of the absence of either or both
any proceeding if he/she has or has had financial, parties despite due notice, the appointing authority
fiduciary or other interest in the controversy or cause shall appoint the sole arbitrator.
to be decided or in the result of the proceeding, or has
any personal bias, which might prejudice the right of (e) If the default appointment of an arbitrator is
any party to a fair and impartial award. objected to by a party on whose behalf the default
appointment is to be made, and the defaulting party
No party shall select as an arbitrator any person to act requests the appointing authority for additional time
as his/her champion or to advocate his/her cause. to appoint his/her arbitrator, the appointing authority,
having regard to the circumstances, may give the
(b) The parties are free to agree on a procedure of requesting party not more than thirty (30) days to
appointing the arbitrator or arbitrators. If, in the make the appointment.
contract for arbitration or in the submission, a
provision is made for a method of appointing an If the objection of a party is based on the ground that
arbitrator or arbitrators, such method shall be the party did not fail to choose and appoint an
followed. arbitrator for the arbitral tribunal, there shall be
attached to the objection the appointment of an
(c) Failing such agreement, arbitrator together with the latters acceptance thereof
and curriculum vitae. Otherwise, the appointing
(i) in an arbitration with three (3) arbitrators, each authority shall appoint the arbitrator for that party.
party shall appoint one (1) arbitrator, and the two (2)
arbitrators thus appointed shall appoint the third (f) In making a default appointment, the appointing
arbitrator; if a party fails to appoint the arbitrator authority shall have regard to such considerations as
within thirty (30) days of receipt of a request to do so are likely to secure the appointment of an independent
from the other party, or if the two arbitrators fail to and impartial arbitrator. In order to achieve speedy
agree on the third arbitrator within thirty (30) days of and impartial justice and to moderate the cost of
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 111

arbitration, in choosing an arbitrator, the appointing (ii) the name/s and curricula vitae of the appointed
authority shall give preference to a qualified person arbitrator/s;
who has a place of residence or business in the same
general locality as the agreed venue of the arbitration (iii) the acceptance of his/her/its appointment of the
and who is likely to accept the arbitrators fees agreed appointed arbitrator/s;
upon by the parties, or as fixed in accordance either
with the internal guidelines or the Schedule of Fees (iv) any qualification or disqualification of the
approved by the administering institution or by the arbitrator as provided in the arbitration agreement;
appointing authority.
(v) an executive summary of the dispute which should
(g) The appointing authority shall give notice in indicate the nature of the dispute and the parties
writing to the parties of the appointment made or its thereto;
inability to comply with the Request for Appointment
and the reasons why it is unable to do so, in which later (vi) principal office and officers of a corporate party;
case, the procedure described under Article 5.5 (Court
or Other Authority for Certain Functions of arbitration (vii) the person/s appearing as counsel for the
Assistance and Supervision) shall apply. party/ies; and

(h) A decision on a matter entrusted by this Article to (viii) information about arbitrators fees where there is
the appointing authority shall be immediately an agreement between the parties with respect thereto.
executory and not subject to appeal or motion for
reconsideration. The appointing authority shall be In institutional arbitration, the request shall include
deemed to have been given by the parties discretionary such further information or particulars as the
authority in making the appointment but in doing so, administering institution shall require.
the appointing authority shall have due regard to any
qualification or disqualification of an arbitrator/s (m) A copy of the Request for Appointment shall be
under paragraph (a) of Article 5.10 (Appointment of delivered to the adverse party. Proof of such delivery
Arbitrators) as well as any qualifications required of shall be included in, and shall form part of, the
the arbitrator/s by the agreement of the parties and to Request for Appointment filed with the appointing
such considerations as are likely to secure the authority.
appointment of an independent and impartial
arbitrator. (n) A party upon whom a copy of the Request for
Appointment is communicated may, within seven (7)
(i) The chairman of the arbitral tribunal shall be days of its receipt, file with the appointing authority
selected in accordance with the agreement of the his/her/its objection/s to the Request or ask for an
parties and/or the rules agreed upon or, in default extension of time, not exceeding thirty (30) days from
thereof, by the arbitrators appointed. receipt of the request, to appoint an arbitrator or act in
accordance with the procedure agreed upon or
(j) Any clause giving one of the agreement, if otherwise provided by these Rules.
valid, shall be construed as permitting the
appointment of one (1) arbitrator by all claimants and Within the aforementioned periods, the party seeking
one (1) arbitrator by all respondents. The third the extension shall provide the appointing authority
arbitrator shall be appointed as provided above. and the adverse party with a copy of the appointment
of his/her arbitrator, the latters curriculum vitae, and
If all the claimants or all the respondents cannot the latters acceptance of the appointment. In the event
decide among themselves on an arbitrator, the that the said party fails to appoint an arbitrator within
appointment shall be made for them by the appointing said period, the appointing authority shall make the
authority. default appointment.

(k) The appointing authority may adopt Guidelines for (o) An arbitrator, in accepting an appointment, shall
the making of a Request for Appointment. include, in his/her acceptance letter, a statement that:

(l) Except as otherwise provided in the Guidelines of (i) he/she agrees to comply with the applicable law, the
the appointing authority, if any, a Request for arbitration rules agreed upon by the parties, or in
Appointment shall include, as applicable, the default thereof, these Rules, and the Code of Ethics for
following: Arbitrators in Domestic Arbitration, if any;

(i) the demand for arbitration; (ii) he/she accepts as compensation the arbitrators
fees agreed upon by the parties or as determined in
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 112

accordance with the rules agreed upon by the parties, presumption of bias, he/she shall immediately disclose
or in default thereof, these Rules; and those circumstances to the parties. A written disclosure
is not required where it is made during the arbitration
(iii) he agrees to devote as much time and attention to and it appears in a written record of the arbitration
the arbitration as the circumstances may require in proceedings.
order to achieve the objective of a speedy, effective and
fair resolution of the dispute. (e) An arbitrator who has or has had financial or
professional dealings with a party to the arbitration or
Article 5.11. Grounds for Challenge. (a) When a person to the counsel of either party shall disclose in writing
is approached in connection with his/her possible such fact to the parties, and shall, in good faith,
appointment as an arbitrator, he/she shall disclose any promptly respond to questions from a party regarding
circumstance likely to give rise to justifiable doubts as the nature, extent and age of such financial or
to his/her impartiality, independence, qualifications professional dealings.
and disqualifications. An arbitrator, from the time of
his/her appointment and throughout the arbitral Article 5.12. Challenge Procedure. (a) The parties are
proceedings, shall without delay, disclose any such free to agree on a procedure for challenging an
circumstances to the parties unless they have already arbitrator, subject to the provisions of paragraph (c) of
been informed of them by him/her. this Article.

A person, who is appointed as an arbitrator (b) Failing such agreement, a party who intends to
notwithstanding the disclosure made in accordance challenge an arbitrator shall, within fifteen (15) days
with this Article, shall reduce the disclosure to writing after becoming aware of the constitution of the arbitral
and provide a copy of such written disclosure to all tribunal or after becoming aware of any circumstance
parties in the arbitration. referred to in paragraph (b) of Article 5.11 (Grounds for
Challenge), send a written statement of the reasons for
(b) An arbitrator may be challenged only if: the challenge to the arbitral tribunal. Unless the
challenged arbitrator withdraws from his/her office or
(i) circumstances exist that give rise to justifiable the other party agrees to the challenge, the arbitral
doubts as to his/her impartiality or independence; tribunal shall decide on the challenge.

(ii) he/she does not possess qualifications as provided (c) If a challenge under any procedure agreed upon by
for in this Chapter or those agreed to by the parties; the parties or under the procedure of paragraph (b) of
this Article in not successful, the challenging party may
(iii) he/she is disqualified to act as arbitration under request the appointing authority, within thirty (30)
these Rules; days after having received notice of the decision
rejecting the challenge, to decide on the challenge,
(iv) he refuses to respond to questions by a party which decision shall be immediately executory and not
regarding the nature and extent of his professional subject to appeal or motion for reconsideration. While
dealings with a party or its counsel. such a request is pending, the arbitral tribunal,
including the challenged arbitrator, may continue the
(c) If, after appointment but before or during hearing, arbitral proceedings and make an award.
a person appointed to serve as an arbitrator shall
discover any circumstances likely to create a (d) If a request for inhibition is made, it shall be
presumption of bias, or which he/she believes might deemed as a challenge.
disqualify him/her as an impartial arbitrator, the
arbitrator shall immediately disclose such information (e) A party may challenge an arbitrator appointed by
to the parties. Thereafter, the parties may agree in him/her/it, or in whose appointment he/she/it has
writing: participated, only for reasons of which he/she/it
becomes aware after the appointment has been made.
(i) to waive the presumptive disqualifying
circumstances; or (f) The challenge shall be in writing and it shall state
specific facts that provide the basis for the ground
(ii) to declare the office of such arbitrator vacant. Any relied upon for the challenge. A challenge shall be
such vacancy shall be filed in the same manner the made within fifteen (15) days from knowledge by a
original appointment was made. party of the existence of a ground for a challenge or
within fifteen (15) days from the rejection by an
(d) After initial disclosure is made and in the course of arbitrator of a partys request for his/her inhibition.
the arbitration proceedings, when the arbitrator
discovers circumstances that are likely to create a
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 113

(g) Within fifteen (15) days of receipt of the challenge, (iv) the appointing authority decides the challenge and
the challenged arbitrator shall decide whether he/she declares the office of the challenged arbitrator vacant,
shall accept the challenge or reject it. If he/she accepts or
the challenge, he/she shall voluntarily withdraw as
arbitrator. If he/she rejects it, he/she shall (v) in default of the appointing authority, the court
communicate, within the same period of time, his/her decides the challenge and declares the office of the
rejection of the challenge and state the facts and challenged arbitrator vacant.
arguments relied upon for such rejection.
(n) The decision of the parties, the arbitral tribunal,
(h) An arbitrator who does not accept the challenge the appointing authority, or in proper cases, the court,
shall be given an opportunity to be heard. to accept or reject a challenge is not subject to appeal
or motion for reconsideration.
(i) Notwithstanding the rejection of the challenge by
the arbitrator, the parties may, within the same fifteen (o) Until a decision is made to replace the arbitrator
(15) day period, agree to the challenge. under this Article, the arbitration proceeding shall
continue notwithstanding the challenge, and the
(j) In default of an agreement of the parties to agree on challenged arbitrator shall continue to participate
the challenge thereby replacing the arbitrator, the therein as an arbitrator. However, if the challenge
arbitral tribunal shall decide on the challenge within incident is raised before the court, because the parties,
thirty (30) days from receipt of the challenge. the arbitral tribunal or appointing authority failed or
refused to act within the period provided in paragraphs
(k) If the challenge procedure as agreed upon by the (j) and (k) of this Article, the arbitration proceeding
parties or as provided in this Article is not successful, shall be suspended until after the court shall have
or a party or the arbitral tribunal shall decline to act, decided the incident. The arbitration shall be
the challenging party may request the appointing continued immediately after the court has delivered an
authority in writing to decide on the challenge within order on the challenging incident. If the court agrees
thirty (30) days after having received notice of the that the challenged arbitrator shall be replaced, the
decision rejecting the challenge. The appointing parties shall immediately replace the arbitrator
authority shall decide on the challenge within fifteen concerned.
(15) days from receipt of the request. If the appointing
authority shall fail to act on the challenge within thirty (p) The appointment of a substitute arbitrator shall be
(30) days from the date of its receipt or within such made pursuant to the procedure applicable to the
further time as it may fix, with notice to the parties, the appointment of the arbitrator being replaced.
requesting party may renew the request with the court.
Article 5.13. Failure or Impossibility to Act. (a) If an
The request made under this Article shall include the arbitrator becomes de jure or de facto unable to
challenge, the reply or explanation of the challenged perform his/her functions or for other reasons fails to
arbitrator and relevant communication, if any, from act without undue delay, his/her mandate terminates if
either party, or from the arbitral tribunal. he/she withdraws from his/her office or if the parties
agree on the termination. Otherwise, if a controversy
(n) Every communication required or agreement made remains concerning any of these grounds, any party
under this Article in respect of a challenge shall be may request the appointing authority to decide on the
delivered, as appropriate, to the challenged arbitrator, termination of the mandate, which decision shall be
to the parties, to the remaining members of the arbitral immediately executory and not subject to appeal or
tribunal and to the institution administering the motion for reconsideration.
arbitration, if any.
(b) If, under this Article or Article 5.12 (Challenge
(m) A challenged arbitrator shall be replaced if: Procedure), an arbitrator withdraws from his/her
office or a party agrees to the termination of the
(i) he/she withdraws as arbitrator, or mandate of an arbitrator, this does not imply
acceptance Of the validity of any ground referred to in
(ii) the parties agree in writing to declare the office of this Article 5.12.
arbitrator vacant, or
Article 5.14. Appointment of Substitute Arbitrator.
(iii) the arbitral tribunal decides the challenge and Where the mandate of an arbitrator terminates under
declares the office of the challenged arbitrator vacant, Articles 5.12 (Challenge Procedure) or 5.13 (Failure or
or Impossibility) or because of his withdrawal from office
for any other reason or because of the revocation of his
mandate by agreement of the parties or in any other
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 114

case of termination of his/her mandate, a substitute continuation of the arbitration until the award is
arbitrator shall be appointed according to the rules issued.
applicable to the arbitrator being replaced.
Article 5.16 Power of Arbitral Tribunal to Order
RULE 4 Jurisdiction of Arbitral Tribunal Interim Measures. (a) Unless otherwise agreed by the
parties, the arbitral tribunal may, at the request of a
Article 5.15 Competence of Arbitral Tribunal to Rule on party, order any party to take such interim measures of
its Jurisdiction. (a) When a demand for arbitration protection as the arbitral tribunal may consider
made by a party to a dispute is objected to by the necessary in respect of the subject matter of the
adverse party, the arbitral tribunal shall, in the first dispute following the rules in this Article. Such interim
instance, resolve the objection when made on any of measures may include, but shall not be limited to
the following grounds: preliminary injunction directed against a party,
appointment of receivers or detention preservation,
(i) the arbitration agreement is in existent, void, inspection of property that is the subject of the dispute
unenforceable or not binding upon a person for any in arbitration.
reason, including the fact that the adverse party is not
privy to said agreement; or (b) After the constitution of the arbitral tribunal, and
during arbitral proceedings, a request for interim
(ii) the dispute is not arbitrable or is outside the scope measures of protection, or modification thereof, shall
of the arbitration agreement; or be made with the arbitral tribunal. The arbitral
tribunal is deemed constituted when the sole arbitrator
(iii) the dispute is under the original and exclusive or the third arbitrator, who has been nominated, has
jurisdiction of a court or quasi-judicial body, accepted the nomination and written communication
of said nomination and acceptance has been received
(b) If a party raises any of the grounds for objection, by the party making the request.
the same shall not preclude the appointment of the
arbitrator/s as such issue is for the arbitral tribunal to (c) The following rules on interim or provisional relief
decide. shall be observed:

The participation of a party in the selection and (i) Any party may request that the provisional or
appointment of an arbitrator and the filling of interim relief be granted against the adverse party.
appropriate pleadings before the arbitral tribunal to
question its jurisdiction shall not be construed as a (ii) Such relief may be granted:
submission to the jurisdiction of the arbitral tribunal
or of a waiver of his/her/its right to assert such (aa) To prevent irreparable loss or injury;
grounds to challenge the jurisdiction of the arbitral
tribunal or the validity of the resulting award. (bb) To provide security for the performance of an
obligation;
(c) The respondent in the arbitration may invoke any
such grounds to question before the court the (cc) To produce or preserve evidence; or
existence, validity, or enforceability of the arbitration
agreement, or the propriety of the arbitration, or the (dd) To compel any other appropriate act or omissions.
jurisdiction of the arbitrator and invoke the pendency
of such action as ground for suspension of the (iii) The order granting provisional relief may be
arbitration proceeding. The arbitral tribunal, having conditioned upon the provision of security or any act
regard to the circumstances of the case, and the need or omission specified in the order.
for the early and expeditious settlement of the dispute,
in light of the facts and arguments raised to question (iv) Interim or provisional relief is requested by
its jurisdiction, may decide either to suspend the written application transmitted by reasonable means
arbitration until the court has made a decision on the to the arbitral tribunal and the party against whom
issue or continue with arbitration. relief is sought, describing in appropriate detail the
precise relief, the party against whom the relief is
(d) If a dispute is, under an arbitration agreement, to requested, the ground for the relief and the evidence
be submitted to arbitration, but before arbitration is supporting the request.
commenced or while it is pending, a party files an
action before the court which embodies or includes as (v) The order either granting or denying an application
a cause of action the dispute that is to be submitted to for interim relief shall be binding upon the parties.
arbitration the filling of such action shall not prevent
the commencement of the arbitration or the
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 115

(vi) Either party may apply with the court for (bb) a description of the nature and circumstances of
assistance in implementing or enforcing an interim the dispute giving rise to the claim;
measure ordered by an arbitral tribunal.
(cc) a statement of the relief sought, including the
(vii) A party who does not comply with the order shall amount of the claim;
be liable for all damages, resulting from
noncompliance, including all expenses, and reasonable (dd) the relevant agreements, if any, including the
attorneys fee paid in obtaining the orders judicial arbitration agreement, a copy of which shall be
enforcement. attached; and

RULE 5 Conduct of Arbitral Proceedings (ee) appointment of arbitrators and / or demand to


appoint.
Article 5.17. Equal Treatment of Parties. The parties
shall be treated with equally and each party shall be (b) If the arbitration agreement provides for the
given a full opportunity of presenting his/her/its case. appointment of a sole arbitrator, the demand shall
include an invitation of the claimant to the respondent
Article 5.18 Determination of Rules of Procedure. (a) to meet and agree upon such arbitrator, the place, time
Subjected to the provisions of these Rules, the parties and date stated therein which shall not be less than
are free to agree on the procedure to be followed by the thirty (30) days from receipt of the demand.
arbitral tribunal in conducting the proceedings.
(c) If the arbitration agreement provides for the
(b) Failing such agreement, the arbitral tribunal may establishment of an arbitral tribunal of three (3)
subject to the provision of the ADR Act, conduct the arbitrators, the demand shall name the arbitrator
arbitration in such manner as it considers appropriate. appointed by the claimant. It shall include the
The power conferred upon the arbitral tribunal curriculum vitae of the arbitrator appointed by the
includes the power to determine admissibility, claimant and the latters acceptance of the
relevance, materially and weight of evidence. appointment.

Article 5.19 Place of Arbitration. (a) The parties are (d) Where there is no prior arbitration agreement,
free to agree on the place of arbitration. Failing such arbitration may be initiated by one party through a
agreement, the place of arbitration shall be in Metro demand upon the other to submit their dispute to
Manila unless the arbitral tribunal, having regard to arbitration. Arbitration shall be deemed commenced
the circumstances of the case, including the upon the agreement by the other party to submit the
convenience of the parties, shall decide on a different dispute to arbitration.
place of arbitration.
(e) The demand shall required the respondent to name
(b) The arbitral tribunal may, unless otherwise agreed his/her/its/ arbitrator within a period which shall not
by the parties, meet at any place it considers be less than fifteen (15) days from receipt of the
appropriate for consultation among its members, for demand. This period may be extended by agreement of
hearing witnesses, experts or the parties, or for the parties. Within said period, the respondent shall
inspection of goods, other property or documents. give a written notice to the claimant of the
appointment of the respondents arbitrator and attach
Article 5.20 Commencement of Arbitral Proceedings to the notice the arbitrators curriculum vitae and the
(a) Where there is a prior arbitration agreement latters acceptance of the appointment.
between the parties, arbitration is deemed commenced
as follows: Article 5.21 Language (a) The parties are free to agree
on the language or languages to be used in the arbitral
(i) In institutional arbitration is commenced in proceedings. Failing such agreement, the language to
accordance with the arbitration rules of the institution be used shall be English or Filipino. The language/s
agreed upon by the parties. agreed, unless otherwise specified therein, shall be in
all hearings and all written statements, orders or other
(ii) In ad hoc arbitration, arbitration is commenced by communication by the parties and the arbitral tribunal.
the claimant upon delivering to the respondent a
demand for arbitration. A demand may be in any form (b) The arbitral tribunal may order that any
stating: documentary evidence shall be accompanied by a
translation into the language or languages agreed upon
(aa) the name, address and description of each of the by the parties in accordance with paragraph (a) of this
parties; Article.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 116

Article 5.22 Statement of Claim and Defense (a) Within interim relief, final award and the like that, if made by
the period of time agreed by the parties or determined electronic or similar means, shall require further
by the arbitral tribunal, the claimant shall state the confirmation in the form of a hard copy or hard copies
facts supporting his/her/its claim, the points at issue delivered personally or by registered post.
and the relief or remedy sought, and the respondent
shall state his/her defense in respect of these (vii) The issuance of subpoena or subpoena duces
particulars, unless the parties may have otherwise tecum by the arbitral tribunal to compel the
agreed as to the required elements of such statements. production of evidence if either party shall or is likely
The parties may submit with their statements all to request it;
documents they consider to be relevant or may add a
reference to the documents or other evidence they will (viii) The manner by which expert testimony will be
submit. received if a party will or is likely to request the arbitral
tribunal to appoint one or more experts, and in such
(b) Unless otherwise agreed by the parties, either party case, the period for the submission to the arbitrator by
may amend or supplement his/her/its claim or defense the requesting party of the proposed terms of reference
during the course of the arbitral proceedings, unless for the expert, the fees to be paid, the manner of
the arbitral tribunal considers it inappropriate to allow payment to the expert and the deposit by the parties or
such amendments having regard to the delay in the requesting party of such amount necessary to cover
making it. all expenses associated with the referral of such issues
to the expert before the expert is appointed;
Article 5.23 Hearing and Written Proceedings (a) In ad
hoc arbitration, the procedure determined by the (ix) The possibility of either party applying for an order
arbitrator, with the agreement of the parties, shall be granting interim relief either with arbitral tribunal or
followed. In institutional arbitration, the applicable with the court, and, in such case, the nature of the
rules of procedure of the arbitration institution shall be relief to be applied for;
followed. In default of agreement of the parties, the
arbitration procedure shall be as provided in this (x) The possibility of a site or ocular inspection, the
Chapter. purpose of such inspection, and in such case, the date,
place and time of the inspection and the manner of
(b) Within thirty (30) days from the appointment of conducting it, and the sharing and deposit of any
the arbitrator or the constitution of an arbitral associated fees and expenses;
tribunal, the arbitral tribunal shall call the parties and
their respective counsels to a pre-hearing conference to (xi) The amount to be paid to the arbitral tribunal as
discuss the following matters: fees and the associated costs, charges and expenses of
arbitration and the manner and timing of such
(i) The venue or place/s where the arbitration payments; and
proceeding may be conducted in an office space, a
business center, a function room or any suitable place (xii) Such other relevant matters as the parties and the
agreed upon by the parties and the arbitral tribunal, arbitral tribunal may consider necessary to provide for
which may vary per session/hearing/conference; a speedy and efficient arbitration of the dispute.

(ii) The manner of recording the proceedings; (c) To the extent possible, the arbitral tribunal and the
parties shall agree upon any such matters and in
(iii) The periods for the communication of the default of agreement, the arbitral tribunal shall have
statement of claims with or without counterclaims, and the discretion and authority to make the decision,
answer to the counterclaim/s and the form and although in making decision, regard shall be given to
contents of such pleadings. the views expressed by both parties.

(iv) The definition of the issues submitted to the (d) The arbitral tribunal shall, in consultation with the
arbitral tribunal for determination and the summary of parties, fix the date/s and the time of hearing, regard
the claims and counterclaims of the parties; being given to the desirability of conducting and
concluding an arbitration without undue delay.
(v) The manner by which evidence may be offered if an
oral hearing is required, the submission of sworn (e) The hearing set shall not be postponed except with
written statements in lieu of oral testimony, the cross- the conformity of the arbitrator and the parties and
examination and further examination of witnesses; only for a good and sufficient cause. The arbitral
tribunal may deny a request to postpone or to cancel a
(vi) The delivery of certain types of communications scheduled hearing on the ground that a party has
such as pleadings, terms of reference, order granting
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 117

requested or is intending to request from the court or
from the arbitrator an order granting interim relief. (p) After a hearing is declared closed, no further
motion or manifestation or submission may be allowed
(f) A party may, during the proceedings, represent except for post-hearing briefs and reply briefs that the
himself/herself/itself or through a representative, at parties have agreed to submit within a fixed period
such hearing. after the hearing is declared closed, or when the
arbitral tribunal, motu proprio or upon request of a
(g) The hearing may proceed in the absence of a party party, allows the reopening of the hearing.
who fails to obtain an adjournment thereof or who,
despite due notice, fails to be present, by (q) Decisions on interlocutory matters shall be made
himself/herself/itself or through a representative, at by the sole arbitrator or by the majority of the arbitral
such hearing. tribunal. The arbitral tribunal may authorized its
chairman to issue or release, on behalf of the arbitral
(h) Only parties, their respective representatives, the tribunal, its decision on interlocutory matters.
witnesses and the administrative staff of the arbitral
tribunal shall have the right to be present if the parties, (r) Except as provide in section 17 (d) of the ADR Act.
upon being informed of the presence of such person No arbitrator shall act as a mediator in a any
and the reason for his/her presence, interpose no proceeding in which he/she is acting as arbitrator even
objection thereto. if requested by the parties; and all negotiations.

(i) Issues raised during the arbitration proceeding (s) Before assuming the duties of his/her office, an
relating to (a) the jurisdiction of the arbitral tribunal arbitrator must be sworn by any officer authorized by
over one or more of the claims or counter claims, or (b) law to administer an oath or be required to make an
the arbitrability of a particular claim or counter claim, affirmation to faithfully and fairly hear and examine
shall be resolved by the arbitral tribunal as threshold the matters in controversy and make a just award
issues, if the parties so request, unless they are according to the best his/her ability and
intertwined with factual issues that they cannot be understanding. A copy of the arbitrator's oath or
resolved ahead of the hearing on the merits of the affirmation shall be furnished each party to the
dispute. arbitration.

(j) Each witness shall, before giving testimony, be (t) Either party may object to the commencement or
required to take an oath/ affirmation before the continuation of an arbitration proceeding unless the
arbitral tribunal, to tell the whole truth and nothing arbitrator takes an oath or affirmation as required in
but the truth during the hearing. this chapter. If the arbitrator shall refuse to take an
oath or affirmation as required by law and this rule,
(k) The arbitral tribunal shall arrange for the he/she shall be replaced. The failure to object to the
transcription of the recorded testimony of each witness absence of an oath or affirmation shall be deemed a
and require each party to share the cost of recording waiver of such objection and the proceedings shall
and transcription of the testimony of each witness. continue in due course and may not later be used as a
ground to invalidate the proceedings.
(l) Each party shall provide the other party with a copy
of each statement or document submitted to the (u) the arbitral tribunal shall have the power to
arbitral tribunal and shall have an opportunity to reply administer oaths to, or require affirmation from, all
in writing to the other party's statements and proofs. witnesses directing them to tell the truth, the whole
truth and nothing but the truth in any testimony, oral
(m) The arbitral tribunal may require the parties to or written, which they may give or offer in any
produce such other documents or provide such arbitration hearing. The oath or affirmation shall be
information as in its judgment would be necessary for required of every witness before his/her testimony,
it to render a complete, fair and impartial award. oral or written, is heard or considered.

(n) The arbitral tribunal shall receive as evidence all (v) the arbitral tribunal shall have the power to
exhibits submitted by a party properly marked and required any person to attend a hearing as a witness. It
identified at the time of submission. shall have the power to subpoena witnesses, to testify
and/or produce documents when the relevancy and
(o) At the close of the hearing, the arbitral tribunal materiality thereof has been shown to the arbitral
shall specifically inquire of all parties whether they tribunal. The arbitral tribunal may also require the
have further proof or witnesses to present; upon exclusion of any witness during the testimony of any
receiving a negative reply, the arbitral tribunal shall other witness. Unless the parties otherwise agree, all
declare the hearing closed.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 118

the arbitrators in any controversy must attend all the (vi) Either party may apply with the court for
hearings and hear the evidence of the parties. assistance in implementing or enforcing an interim
measure ordered by an arbitral tribunal.
Article 5.24 Power of Arbitral Tribunal to Order
Interim Muslim. ( a ) unless otherwise agreed by the (vii) A party who does not comply with the order shall
parties, the arbitral tribunal may, at the request of a be liable for all damages, resulting from
party and in accordance with the this Article, order any noncompliance, including all expenses, and reasonably
party to take such interim measures of protection as attorneys fees, paid in obtaining the orders judicial
the arbitral tribunal may consider necessary in respect enforcement.
of the subject matter of the dispute of the procedure,
Such interim measures may include, but shall not be (d) The arbitral tribunal shall be have the power at any
limited, to preliminary injunction directed against a time, before rendering the award, without prejudice to
party, appointment of receivers or detention of the rights of any party to petition the court to take
property that is the subject of the dispute in arbitration measures to safeguard an/or conserve any matter
or its preservation or inspection. which is the subject of the dispute in arbitration.

(b) After the constitution of the arbitral tribunal, and Article 5.25. Default of a Party. Unless otherwise
during the arbitration proceedings, a request for agreed by the parties, if, without showing sufficient
interim measures of protection, or modification causes.
thereof, may be made with the arbitral tribunal. The
arbitral tribunal is deemed constituted when the sole (a) the claimant fails to communicate his/her/its
arbitrator or the third arbitrator, who has been statement of claim in accordance with paragraph (a) of
nominated, has accepted the nomination and written Article 5.22(Statement of Claim and Defense), the
communication of said nomination and acceptance has arbitral tribunal shall terminate the proceedings;
been received by the party making the request.
(b) ]the respondent fails to communicate his/her/its
(c) The following rules on interim or provisional relief statement of defense in accordance with paragraph (a)
shall be observed: of Article 5.22 (Statements of Claim and Defense), the
arbitral tribunal shall continue the proceedings
(i) Any party may request that provisional or interim without treating such failure in itself as an admission
relief be granted against the adverse party. of the claimants allegations;

(ii) Such relief may be granted: (c) any party fails to appear at a hearing or to produce
documentary evidence, the arbitral tribunal may
(aa) To prevent irreparable loss or injury; continue the proceedings and make the award based
on the evidence before it.
(bb) To provide security for the performance of an
obligation; Article 5.26. Expert Appointed by the Arbitral
Tribunal. (a) Unless otherwise agreed by the parties,
(cc) To produce or preserve evidence; or the arbitral tribunal,

(dd) To compel any other appropriate act or omissions. (i) may appoint one or more experts to report to it on
specific issues to be determined by the arbitral
(iii) The order granting provisional relief may be tribunal; or
conditioned upon the provision of security or any act
or omission specified in the order. (ii) may require a party to give the expert any relevant
information or to produce, or to provide access to, any
(iv) Interim provisional relief is requested by written relevant documents, goods or other property for
application transmitted by reasonable means to the his/her inspection.
arbitral tribunal and the party against whom relief is
sought, describing in appropriate detail of the precise (b) Unless otherwise agreed by the parties, if a party so
relief, the party against whom relief is requested the request or if the arbitral tribunal considers it
ground for the relief, and the evidence supporting the necessary, the expert shall, after delivery of his/her
request. written or oral report, participate in a hearing where
the parties have the opportunity to put questions to
(v) The order either granting or denying an application him/her and to present expert witnesses in order to
for interim relief shall be binding upon the parties. testify on the points at issue.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 119

(c) upon agreement of the parties, the finding of the thirty (30) days after the closing of all hearings and/or
expert engaged by the arbitral tribunal on the matter/s submission of the parties respective briefs or if the
referred to him shall be binding upon the parties and oral hearings shall have been waived, within thirty(30)
the arbitral tribunal. days after the arbitral tribunal shall have declared such
proceedings in lieu of hearing closed. This period may
Article 5.27. Court Assistance in Taking Evidence and be further extended by mutual consent of the parties.
Other Matters. (a) The arbitral tribunal or a party, with
the approval of the arbitral tribunal may request from Article 5.30 Settlement. (a) if, during arbitral
a court, assistance in taking evidence such as the proceedings, the parties settle the dispute, the arbitral
issuance of subpoena ad testificandum and subpoena tribunal, record the settlement in the form of an
duces tecum, deposition taking, site or ocular arbitral award on agreed terms, consent award or
inspection, and physical examination of properties. award based on compromise.
The court may grant the request within its competence
and according to its rules on taking evidence. (b) An award as rendered above shall be made in
accordance with the provisions of Article 5.31 (Form
(b) The arbitral tribunal or a party to the dispute and Contents of Award) and shall state that it is an
interested in enforcing an order of the arbitral tribunal award. Such an award has the same status and effect as
may request from a competent court, assistance in any other award on the merits of the case.
enforcing orders of the arbitral tribunal, including but
not limited, to the following: Article 5.31. Form and Contents of Award. (a) The
award shall be made in writing and shall be signed by
(i) Interim or provision relief; the arbitral tribunal. In arbitration proceedings with
more than one arbitrator, the signatures of the
(ii) Protective orders with respect to confidentiality; majority of all members of the arbitral tribunal shall
suffice, provided that the reason for any omitted
(iii) Orders of the arbitral tribunal pertaining to the signature us stated.
subject matter of the dispute that may affect third
persons and/or their properties; and/or (b) The award shall state the reasons upon which is
based, unless the parties have agreed that no reasons
(iv) Examination of debtors. are to be given or the award on agreed terms, consent
award based on compromise under Article 5.30
Article 5.28 Rules Applicable to the Substance of (Settlement).
Dispute. (a) The arbitral tribunal shall decide the
dispute in accordance with such law as is chosen by the (c) The award shall state its date and the placed of
parties, In the absence of such agreement, Philippine arbitration as determined in accordance with the
law shall apply. paragraph (a) of Article 5.19 (Place of Arbitration). The
award shall be deemed to have made at that place.
(b) The arbitral tribunal may grant any remedy or
relief which it deems just and equitable and within the (d) After the award is made, a copy signed by the
scope of the agreement of the parties, which shall arbitrators in accordance with the paragraph (a) of this
include, but not be limited to, the specific performance Article shall be delivered to each party.
of a contract.
(e) The award of the arbitral tribunal need not be
(c) In all cases, the arbitral tribunal shall decide in acknowledged, sworn to under oath, or affirmed by the
accordance with the terms of the contract and shall arbitral tribunal unless so required on writing by the
take into account the usages of the trade applicable to parties. If despite such requirement, the arbitral
the transaction. tribunal shall fail to do as required, the parties may,
within thirty days from the receipt of said award,
Article 5.29. Decision Making by the Arbitral Tribunal. request the arbitral tribunal to supply the omission.
(a) The arbitration proceedings with more than one The failure of the parties to make an objection or make
arbitrator, any decision of the arbitral tribunal shall be such request within the said period shall be deemed a
made, unless otherwise agreed by the parties, by a waiver or such requirement and may no longer be
majority of all its members, However questions of raised as a ground to invalidate the award.
procedure may be decided by the chairman of the
arbitral tribunal, if so authorized by the parties or all Article 5.32. Termination of Proceedings. (a) The
members of the arbitral tribunal. arbitration proceedings are terminated by the final
award or by an order of the arbitral tribunal in
(b) Unless otherwise agreed upon by the parties, the accordance with paragraph (b) of this Article.
arbitral tribunal shall render its written award within
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 120

(b) The arbitral tribunal shall issue an order for the
termination of the arbitration proceedings when: (ii) If so agreed by the parties, with notice to the other
party, may request the arbitral tribunal to give an
(i) The claimant withdraws his claim, unless the interpretation of a specific point or part of the award.
respondents objects thereto for the purpose of
prosecuting his counterclaims in the same proceedings If the arbitral tribunal considers the request to be
of the arbitral tribunal recognizes a legitimate interest justified, it shall make the connection or give the
on his part in obtaining a final settlement of the interpretation within thirty (30) days from receipt of
dispute; or the request. The interpretation shall form part of the
award.
(ii) The parties agree on the termination of the
proceedings; or (b) The arbitral tribunal may correct any errors of the
type referred to in paragraph (a) of this Article on its
(iii) The arbitral tribunal finds that the continuation of own initiative within thirty (30) days of the date of the
the proceedings has for any other reason before award.
unnecessary or impossible; or
(c) Unless otherwise agreed by the parties, a party
(iv) The required deposits are not paid in full in may, with notice to the other party, may request within
accordance with paragraph (d) of Article 5.46 (Fees thirty (30) days of receipt of the award, the arbitral
and Costs). tribunal to make an additional award as to claims
presented in the arbitral proceedings but omitted from
(c) The mandate of the arbitral tribunal ends with the the award., If the arbitral tribunal considers the
termination of the arbitration proceedings, subject to request to be justified, it shall make the additional
the provisions of Article 5.33 (Correction and award within sixty (60) days.
Interpretation of Award) and Article 5.34 (Application
for Settings Aside in Exclusive Recourse Against the (d) The arbitral tribunal may extend, if necessary, the
Arbitral Award). period of time within which it shall make a correction,
interpretation or an additional award under
(d) Except as otherwise provided in the arbitration paragraphs (a) and (c) of this Article.
agreement, no motion for reconsideration correction
and interpretation of award or additional award shall (e) The provisions of Article 5.31 (Form and Contents
be with the arbitral tribunal. The arbitral tribunal, by of Award) shall apply to a correction or interpretation
releasing its final award, loses jurisdiction over the of the award to an additional award.
dispute and the parties to the arbitral tribunal, by
releasing its final award, loses jurisdiction over the Article 5.34. Application for Setting Aside an Exclusive
dispute and the parties to the arbitration. However, Recourse against Arbitral Award. The court when
where is shown that the arbitral tribunal failed to asked to set aside an award, may, where appropriate
resolved an issue. Submitted to him or determination a and so requested by a party, suspend the setting aside
verified motion to complete a final award may be made proceedings for a period of time determined by it in
within thirty(30) days from its receipt. order to give the arbitral tribunal an opportunity to
resume the arbitral proceedings or to take such other
(e) Notwithstanding the foregoing, the arbitral tribunal action as in the arbitral tribunals opinion will
may for special reason, reserved in the final award in eliminate the grounds for setting aside an award.
order a hearing to quantity costs and determine which
party shall bear the costs or apportionment thereof as Article 5.35. Grounds to Vacate an Arbitral Award. (a)
may be determined to be a equitable. Pending The arbitral award may be questioned, vacated or set
determination of this issue, the award shall not be aside by the appropriate court in accordance with the
deemed final for purposes of appeal, vacations, Special ADR Rules only on the following grounds:
correction, or any post-award proceedings.
(i) The arbitral award was procured by corruption,
Article 5.33. Correction and Interpretation of Award, fraud or other undue means; or
Additional Award. (a) Within thirty (30) days from
receipt of the award, unless another period of time has (ii) There was evident partially or corruption in the
been agreed upon by the parties. arbitral tribunal or any of its members; or

(i) A party may, with notice to the other party, the (iii) The arbitral tribunal was guilty of misconduct or
arbitral tribunal to correct in the awards any errors in any form of misbehavior that has materially prejudiced
computation, any clerical or typographical errors or the rights of any party such as refusing to postpone the
any errors similar nature
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 121

hearing upon sufficient cause shown or to hear judgment. Judgment will be enforced like court
evidence pertinent and material to the controversy; or judgments.

(iv) One or more of the arbitrators was disqualified to Article 5.38. Appeal. A decision of the court
act as such under this Chapter and willfully refrained confirming, vacating, setting aside, modifying or
from disclosing such disqualification ; or correcting an arbitral award may be appealed to the
Court of Appeals in accordance with Special ADR
(v) The arbitral tribunal exceeded its powers, or so Rules.
imperfectly executed them, such that a complete, final
and definite award upon the subject matter submitted The losing party who appeals from the judgment of the
to it was not made. Court confirming an arbitral award shall be required
by the Court of Appeals to post a counter-bond
Any other ground raised to question, vacate or set executed in favor of the prevailing party equal to the
aside the arbitral award shall be disregarded by the amount of the award in accordance with the Special
court. ADR Rules.

(b) Where a petition to vacate or set aside an award is Article 5.39. Venue and Jurisdiction. Proceedings for
filed, the petitioner may simultaneously, or the recognition and enforcement of an arbitration
oppositor may in the alternative, petition the court to agreement or for vacation or setting aside of an arbitral
remit the case to the same arbitral tribunal for the award, and any application with a court for arbitration
purpose of making a new or revised final and definite assistance and supervision, except appeal, shall be
award or to direct a new hearing before the same or deemed as special proceedings and shall be filed with
new arbitral tribunal, the members of which shall be the court
chosen in the manner originally provided in the
arbitration agreement or submission. In the latter case, (a) where the arbitration proceedings are conducted;
any provision limiting the time In which the arbitral
tribunal may make a decision shall be deemed (b) where the asset to be attached or levied upon, or
applicable to the new arbitral tribunal and to the act to be enjoined is located;
commence from the date of the courts order.
(c) where any of the parties to the dispute resides or
(c) Where a party files a petition with the court to has its place of business; or
vacate or set aside an award by reason of omission/s
that do not affect the merits of the case and may be (d) in the National Capital Judicial Region at the
cured or remedied, the adverse party may oppose that option of the applicant.
petition and instead request the court to suspend the
vacation or setting aside the proceedings for a period Article 5.40. Notice of Proceedings to Parties. In a
of time to give the arbitral tribunal an opportunity to special proceeding for recognition and enforcement of
cure or remedy the award or resume the arbitration an arbitral award, the court shall send notice to the
proceedings or take such other action as will eliminate parties at their address of record in the arbitration, or
the grounds for vacation or setting aside. if any party cannot be served notice at such address, at
such partys last known address. The notice shall be
RULE 6 Recognition and Enforcement of Awards sent in at least fifteen (15) days before the date set for
the initial hearing of the application.
Article 5.36. Confirmation of Award. The party moving
for an order confirming, modifying, correcting, or Article 5.41. Legal Representation in Domestic
vacating an award, shall, at the time that such motion Arbitration. (a) In domestic arbitration conducted in
is filled with the court for the entry of judgment the Philippines, a party may be represented by any
thereon, also file the original or verified copy of the person of his/her/its choice: Provided, that such
award, the arbitration or settlement agreement, and representative, unless admitted to the practice of law
such papers as may be required by the Special ADR in the Philippines, shall not be authorized to appear as
Rules. counsel in any Philippine Court, or any other quasi-
judicial body whether or such appearance is in relation
Article 5.37. Judgment. Upon the grant of an order to the arbitration in which he/she appears.
confirming, modifying or correcting an award,
judgment may be entered in conformity therewith in (b) No arbitrator shall act as mediator in any
the court where said application is filed. Costs of the proceeding in which he/she is acting as arbitrator and
application and the proceedings subsequent thereto all negotiations towards settlement of the dispute must
may be awarded by the court In its discretion. If take without the presence of the arbitrators.
awarded, the amount thereof must be included in the
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 122

Article 5.42. Confidentially of Arbitration Proceedings. Article 5.45. Consolidation of Proceedings and
The arbitration proceedings, including the records, Concurrent Hearings. The parties may agree that-
evidence and the arbitral award and other confidential
information, shall be considered privileged and (a) the arbitration proceedings shall be consolidated
confidential and shall not be published except with other arbitration proceedings; or

(1) with consent of the parties; or (b) that concurrent hearings shall be held, on such
terms as may be agreed.
(2) for the limited purpose of disclosing to the court
relevant documents in cases where resort to the court Unless the parties agree to confer such power on the
is allowed herein: arbitral tribunal, the tribunal has no power to order
consolidation of arbitration proceedings or concurrent
Provided, however, that the court in which the action hearings.
or the appeal is pending may issue a protective order to
prevent or prohibit disclosure of documents or Article 5.46. Fees and Costs. (a) The fees of the
information containing secret processes, arbitrators shall be agreed upon by the parties and the
developments, research and other information where it arbitrator/s in writing prior to the arbitration.
is shown that the applicant shall be materially
prejudiced by an authorized disclosure thereof. In default of agreement of the parties as to the amount
and manner of payment of arbitrators fees, the
Article 5.43. Death of a Party. Where a party dies after arbitrators fees shall be determined in accordance
making a submission or a contact to arbitrate as with the applicable internal rules of the regular
prescribed in these Rules, the proceeding may be arbitration institution under whose rules he arbitration
begun or continued upon the application of, or notice is conducted; or in ad hoc arbitration, the Schedule of
to, his/her executor or administrator, or to temporary Fees approved by the IBP, If any, or in default thereof,
administrator of his/her estate. In any such case, the the Schedule of Fees that may be approved by the
court may issue an order extending the time within OADR.
which notice of a motion to recognize or vacate an
award must be served. Upon recognizing an award, (b) In addition to arbitrators fees, the parties shall be
where a party has died since it was filed or delivered, responsible for the payment of the administrative fees
the court must enter judgment in the name of the of an arbitration institution administering an
original party; and the proceedings thereupon are the arbitration and cost of arbitration. The latter shall
same as where a party dies after a verdict. include, as appropriate, the fees of an expert appointed
by the arbitral tribunal, the expenses for conducting a
Article 5.44. Multi-Party Arbitration. (a)When a single site inspection, the use of a room where arbitration
arbitration involves more than two parties, these proceedings shall be or have been conducted, the
Rules, to the extent possible, shall be used subject to expenses for the recording and transcription of the
such modifications consistent with Articles 5.17 (Equal arbitration proceedings.
Treatment of Parties) and 5.18 (Determination of
Rules of Procedure) as the arbitral tribunal shall deem (c) The arbitral tribunal shall fix the costs of
appropriate to address possible complexities of a arbitration in its award. The term "costs" include only:
multi-party arbitration. (b) When a claimant includes
persons who are not parties to or otherwise bound by (i) The fees of the arbitral tribunal to be stated
the arbitration agreement , directly or by reference, separately as to each arbitrator and to be fixed by the
between him/her and the respondent as additional arbitral tribunal itself in accordance with this Article;
claimants or the additional respondents unless not
later than the date communicating his/her answer to (ii) The travel and other expenses incurred by the
the request for arbitration, either by motion or by a arbitrators;
special defense in his answer, he objects, on
jurisdictional grounds, to the inclusion of such (iii) The costs of expert advice and of other assistance
additional respondents. The additional respondents required by the arbitral tribunal, such as site
shall be deemed to have consented to their inclusion in inspection and expenses for the recording and
the arbitration unless, not later than the date of transcription of the arbitration proceedings;
communicating their answer to the request for
arbitration, wither by motion or a special defense in (iv) The travel and other expenses of witnesses to the
their answer, they object, on jurisdictional grounds, to extent such expenses are provided by the arbitral
their inclusion. tribunal;
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 123

(v) The costs for legal representation and assistance of award on agreed terms, it shall fix the costs of
the successful party if such costs were claimed during arbitration referred to in paragraph (a) of this Article
the arbitral proceedings, and only to the extent that the in the context of that order or award.
arbitral tribunal determines that the amount of such
costs is reasonable; (e) Except as otherwise agreed by the parties, no
additional fees may be charged by the arbitral tribunal
(vi) Any fees and expenses of the appointing authority. for interpretation or correction or completion of its
award under these Rules.
(d) The fees of the arbitral tribunal shall be reasonable
in amount, taking into account the amount in dispute, (f) The arbitral tribunal, on its establishment, may
the complexity of the subject matter, the time spent by request each party to deposit an equal amount as an
the arbitrators and any other relevant circumstances of advance for the costs referred to in paragraphs (i), (ii)
the case. and (iii) of paragraph (c) of this Article.

If an appointing authority has been agreed upon by the During the course of the arbitral proceedings, the
parties and if such appointing authority has issued a arbitral tribunal may request supplementary deposits
schedule of fees for arbitrators in domestic cases which from the parties.
it administers, the arbitral tribunal, in fixing its fees
shall take that schedule of fees into account to the If an appointing authority has been agreed upon by the
extent that it considers appropriate in the parties, and when a party so requests and the
circumstances of the case. appointing authority consents to perform the function,
the arbitral tribunal shall fix the amounts of any
If such appointing authority has not issued a schedule deposits or supplementary deposits only after
of fees for arbitrators in international cases, any party consultation with the appointing authority which may
may, at any time request the appointing authority to make any comments to the arbitral tribunal which it
furnish a statement setting forth the basis for deems appropriate concerning the amount of such
establishing fees which is customarily followed in deposits and supplementary deposits.
international cases in which the authority appoints
arbitrators. If the appointing authority consents to If the required deposits are not paid in full within
provide such a statement, the arbitral tribunal, in thirty (30) days after receipt of the request, the arbitral
fixing its fees shall take such information into account tribunal shall so inform the parties in order that one of
to the extent that it considers appropriate in the them may make the required payment within such a
circumstances of the case. period or reasonable extension thereof as may be
determined by the arbitral tribunal. If such payment is
In cases referred to in paragraph (d) of this Article, not made, the arbitral tribunal may order the
when a party so requests and the appointing authority termination of the arbitral proceedings.
consents to perform the function, the arbitral tribunal
shall fix its fees only after consultation with the After the award has been made, the arbitral tribunal
appointing authority which may make any comment it shall render an accounting to the parties of the
deems appropriate to the arbitral tribunal concerning deposits received and return any unexpended balance
the fees. to the parties.

(e) Except as provided in the next paragraph, the costs CHAPTER 6


of arbitration shall, in principle, be borne by the ARBITRATION OF CONSTRUCTION DISPUTES
unsuccessful party. However, the arbitral tribunal may
apportion each of such costs between the parties if it The Construction Industry Arbitration Commission
determines that apportionment is reasonable, taking (CIAC), which has original and exclusive jurisdiction
into account the circumstances of the case. over arbitration of construction disputes pursuant to
Executive Order No. 1008, s. 1985, otherwise known as
With respect to the costs of legal representation and the "Construction Industry Arbitration Law", shall
assistance referred to in paragraph (c) (iii) of this promulgate the Implementing Rules and Regulations
Article, the arbitral tribunal, taking into account the governing arbitration of construction disputes,
circumstances of the case, shall be free to determine incorporating therein the pertinent provisions of the
which party shall bear such costs or may apportion ADR Act.
such costs between the parties if it determines that
appointment is reasonable. CHAPTER 7
OTHER ADR FORMS
When the arbitral tribunal issues an order for the
termination of the arbitral proceedings or makes an RULE 1 General Provisions
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 124

Article 7.1. Scope of Application and General (i) The desired qualification of the neutral third
Principles. Except as otherwise agreed, this Chapter person;
shall apply and supply the deficiency in the agreement
of the parties for matters involving the following forms (ii) The manner of his/her selection;
of ADR:
(iii) The appointing authority (not IBP) who shall have
(a) early neutral evaluation; the authority to make the appointment of a neutral
third person; or
(b) neutral evaluation;
(iv) If despite agreement on the foregoing and the
(c) mini-trial; lapse of the period of time stipulated for the
appointment, the parties are unable to select a neutral
(d) mediation-arbitration; third person or appointing authority, then, either party
may request the default appointing authority, as
(e) a combination thereof; or defined under paragraph C1 of Article (Definition of
Terms), to make the appointment taking into
(f) any other ADR form. consideration the nature of the dispute and the
experience and expertise of the neutral third person.
Article 7.2. Applicability of the Rules on Mediation. If
the other ADR form/process is more akin to (c) The parties shall submit and exchange position
arbitration (i.e., the neutral third-person merely assists papers containing the issues and statement of the
the parties in reaching a voluntary agreement), relevant facts and appending supporting documents
Chapter 3 governing Mediation shall have suppletory and affidavits of witnesses to assist the neutral third
application to the extent that it is not in conflict with person in evaluating or assessing the dispute.
the agreement of the parties or this Chapter.
(d) The neutral third person may request either party
Article 7.3. Applicability of the Rules on Arbitration. If to address additional issues that he/she may consider
the other ADR form/process is more akin to necessary for a complete evaluation/assessment of the
arbitration (i.e., the neutral third-person has the power dispute.
to make a binding resolution of the dispute), Chapter 5
governing Domestic Arbitration shall have suppletory (e) The neutral third person may structure the
application to the extent that it is not in conflict with evaluation process in any manner he/she deems
the agreement of the parties or this Chapter. appropriate. In the course thereof, the neutral third
person may identify areas of agreement, clarify the
Article 7.4. Referral. If a dispute is already before a issues, define those that are contentious, and
court, either party may, before and during pre-trial, file encourage the parties to agree on a definition of issues
a motion for the court to refer the parties to other ADR and stipulate on facts or admit the genuineness and
forms/processes. However, at any time during court due execution of documents.
proceedings, even after pre-trial, the parties may
jointly move for suspension/dismissal of the action (f) The neutral third person shall issue a written
pursuant to Article 2030 of the Civil Code of the evaluation or assessment within thirty (30) days from
Philippines. the conclusion of the evaluation process. The opinion
shall be non-binding and shall set forth how the
Article 7.5. Submission of Settlement Agreement. neutral third person would have ruled had the matter
Either party may submit to the court before which the been subject to a binding process. The evaluation or
case is pending any settlement agreement following a assessment shall indicate the relative strengths and
neutral or an early neutral evaluation, mini-trial or weakness of the positions of the parties, the basis for
mediation-arbitration. the evaluation or assessment, and an estimate, when
feasible, of the amount for which a party may be liable
RULE 2 Neutral or Early Neutral Evaluation to the other if the dispute were made subject to a
binding process.
Article 7.6. Neutral or Early Neutral Evaluation. (a)
The neutral or early neutral evaluation shall be (g) There shall be no ex-parte communication between
governed by the rules and procedure agreed upon by the neutral third person and any party to dispute
the parties. In the absence of said agreement, this Rule without the consent of all parties.
shall apply.
(h) All papers and written presentations
(b) If the parties cannot agree on, or fail to provide for: communicated to the neutral third person, including
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 125

any paper prepared by a party to be communicated to
the neutral third person or to the other party as part of At the end of each presentation, rebuttal or sur-
the dispute resolution process, and the neutral third rebuttal, the mini-trial panel member/s may ask
persons written non-binding assessment or clarificatory questions from any of the presentors.
evaluation, shall be treated as confidential.
(g) After the mini-trial, the mini-trial panel members
RULE 3 Mini-Trial shall negotiate a settlement of the dispute by
themselves.
Article 7.7. Mini-Trial. (a) A mini-trial shall be
governed by the rules and procedure agreed upon by In cases where a neutral third person is appointed, the
the parties. In the absence of said agreement, this Rule neutral third person shall assist the proceedings shall
shall apply. be governed by Chapter 3 of Mediation.

(b) A mini-trial shall be conducted either as: (i) a RULE 4 Mediation-Arbitration


separate dispute resolution process; or (ii) a
continuation of mediation, neutral or early neutral Article 7.8. MediationArbitration (a) A Mediation-
evaluation or any other ADR process. Arbitration shall be governed by the rules and
procedure agreed upon by the parties, In the absence
(c) The parties may agree that a mini-trial be of said agreement, Chapter 5 on Mediation shall first
conducted with or without the presence and apply and thereafter, Chapter 5 on Domestic
participation of a neutral third person. If a neutral Arbitration.
third person is agreed upon and chosen, he/she shall
preside over the mini-trial. The parties may agree to (b) No Person shall having been engage and having
appoint one or more (but equal in number per party) acted as mediator of a dispute between the parties,
senior executive/s, on its behalf, to sit as mini-trial following a failed mediation, act as arbitrator of the
panel members. same dispute, unless the parties, in a written
agreement, expressly authorize the mediator to hear
(d) The senior executive/s chosen to sit as mini-trial and decide the case as an arbitrator
panel members must be duly authorized to negotiate
and settle the dispute with the other party. The (c) The mediator who becomes an arbitrator pursuant
appointment of a mini-trial panel member/s shall be to this Rule shall make an appropriate disclosure to the
communicated to the other party. This appointment parties as if the arbitration proceeding had
shall constitute a representation to the other party that commenced and will proceed as a new dispute
the mini-trial panel member/s has/have the authority resolution process, and shall, before entering upon
to enter into a settlement agreement binding upon the his/her duties, executive the appropriate oath or
principal without any further action or ratification by affirmation of office as arbitrator in accordance with
the latter. these Rules.

(e) Each party shall submit a brief executive summary RULE 5- Costs and Fees
of the dispute in sufficient copies as to provide one
copy to each mini-trial panel member and to the Article 7.9 Costs and Fees. (a) Before entering his/her
adverse party. The summary shall identify the specific duties as ADR Provider , he/she shall agree with the
factual or legal issue or issues. Each party may attach parties on the cost of the ADR procedure, the fees to be
to the summary a more exhaustive recital of the facts paid and manner of payment for his her services.
of the dispute and the applicable law and
jurisprudence. (b) n the absence of such agreement, the fees for the
services of the ADR provider/practitioner shall be
(f) At the date time and place agreed upon, the parties determined as follows:
shall appear before the mini-trial panel members. The
lawyer of each party and/or authorized representative (i) If the ADR procedure is conducted under the rules
shall present his/her case starting with the claimant and/or administered by an institution regularly
followed by the respondent. The lawyer and/or providing ADR services to the general public, the fees
representative of each party may thereafter offer of the ADR professional shall be determined in
rebuttal or sur-rebuttal arguments. accordance with schedule of fees approved by such
institution, if any;
Unless the parties agree on a shorter or longer period,
the presentation-in-chief shall be made, without (ii) In ad hoc ADR, the fees shall be determined in
interruption, for one hour and the rebuttal or sur- accordance with the schedule of fees approved by the
rebuttal shall be thirty (30) minutes. OADR;
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 126

3.7 JUDICIAL DISPUTE RESOLUTION
(iii) In the absence of a schedule of fees approved by
the ADR institution or by the OADR, the fees shall be
determined by the ADR institution or by the OADR, as
the case may be, and complexity of the process, the
Judicial dispute resolution (JDR)
amount in dispute and the professional standing of the
ADR professional.
In En Banc A.M. No. 04-1-12-SC-PhilJA, August
29, 2006, Re: PhiLJA Resolution No. 06-22, re:
(c) A contingency fee arrangement shall not be
Revised Guidelines for the Implementation of an
allowed. The amount that may be allowed to an ADR
Enhanced Pre-Trial Proceeding under the JURIS
professional may not be made dependent upon the
Project, as Amended, the Philippine Supreme Court
success of his/her effort in helping the parties to settle
adopted the rules of the new judicial dispute
their dispute.
resolution (JDR) system of the Philippines
(described as an enhanced pre-trial proceeding)
CHAPTER 8
under its on-going JURIS Project.
MISCELLANEOUS PROVISION

Article 8.1. Amendments. These Rules or any portion The Court has piloted the new concept in selected trial
hereof may be amended by the Secretary of Justice. courts in the Philippines which are called JURIS
model courts.
Article 8.2 Separability Clause. If any part, article or
provision of these Rules are declared invalid or As an explanatory note, the Court noted that despite
unconstitutional, the other parts hereof not affected the priority given by Rule 18 of the Rules of Court
thereby shall remain valid. (pre-trial), as amended, for the amicable settlement
of cases, most trial judges go through the function of
Article 8.3 Funding. The heads of department and exploring settlement perfunctorily for various
agencies concerned, especially the Department of reasons, including fear of being disqualified if he
Justice, insofar as the funding requirements of the goes into the process more intensively.
OADR is concerned, shall immediately include in their
annual appropriation the funding necessary to In general, the concept is that mediatable cases are
implement programs and extend services required by referred to Court-Annex Mediation (CAM) for
the ADR Act and these Rules. mediation under accredited mediators in the
Philippine Mediation Center (PMC) and subsequently
Article 8.4 Transitory Provisions. Considering the referred to Judicial Dispute Resolution (JDR) for
procedural character of the ADR Act and these Rules, further mediation by the judges if it is not resolved
the provisions of these Rules shall be applicable to all under CAM. If the case is still not settled in JDR, the
pending arbitration, mediation or other ADR forms case is transferred to the pairing court to proceed
covered by the ADR Act if the parties agree. with trial.

The judge conducting the JDR is called the JDR


Article. 8.5 Effectivity Clause. These Rules shall take judge instead of pre-trial judge because under the
effect fifteen (15) days after the completion of its revised guidelines, pre-trial proper is resumed
publication in at least two (2) national newspapers of after JDR, but this time, to be conducted by the
general circulation. trial judge instead of the judge who conducted
JDR.
APPROVED.
December 4, 2009 A case may be referred to JDR even after conclusion
of the pre-trial and during the trial itself.

3.6 OTHER SC ISSUANCES ON ADR The JDR judge may preside over the trial proceedings
upon joint request of both parties.

A limited period is imposed for settlement of JDR


cases, i.e., thirty (30) days for first level courts and
sixty (60) days for regional trial courts. These periods
may be extended upon the discretion of the JDR judge.

ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 127

Where settlement on the civil aspect has been Whatever the result of the mediation may be, the
reached in criminal cases covered by mediation but the case is always returned to the originating court
period of payment in accordance with the terms of for appropriate action - either for the approval of
settlement exceeds one (1) year, the case may be the compromise agreement or for trial, as the
archived upon motion of the prosecution with case may be.
concurrence of the private complainant and
approval by the judge. In Family Courts, due to the special nature of a family
dispute for which specialized family courts have been
The civil aspect of theft, under Art. 308 of the designated, parties may file a joint motion
Revised Penal Code, is now part of the cases for requesting that the case be tried by said special court
referral to mediation. despite the judge thereon having been the JDR
judge.
The concept is that the JDR judge acts as the
mediator, the conciliator, early neutral evaluator, or However, if there is another family court in the same
a combination of any of the above. JURIS site, the trial judge shall be that of the family
court which did not conduct JDR proceedings.
As a mediator and conciliator, the judge facilitates
the settlement discussions between parties and tries to
reconcile their differences.
In Commercial Courts, the JDR shall be conducted by
As a neutral evaluator, the judge assesses the the pair judge of the commercial court.
relative strengths and weaknesses of each party's case
and makes a non-binding and impartial evaluation of Where JDR does not succeed, the judge of the
the chances of each party's success in the case. commercial court shall be the trial judge.

On the basis of his neutral evaluation, the judge Cases may be referred to JDR even during the trial
persuades the parties to reconsider their prior stage upon joint motion of the parties.
reluctance to settle their case amicably.
If the motion is granted, the JDR shall be conducted
Judicial proceedings shall be divided into two stages: by the pairing judge in multiple sala courts, or in
(1) from the filing of a complaint, to the conduct of single sala courts, by the nearest court (or pair
CAM and JDR during the pre-trial stage, and (2) pre- court, if any).
trial proper to trial and judgment.
Whatever the result of the JDR may be, the case is
The judge to whom the case has been originally always returned to the originating court for
raffled shall preside over the first stage. He shall be appropriate action - either for the approval of
called the JDR judge. the compromise agreement or for trial, as the
case may be.
The concept is that the parties will be more
spontaneous once they are assured that the JDR judge To safeguard the confidentiality of mediation
will not be the one to try the case. proceedings, the JDR judge shall not pass on any
information obtained in the course of conciliation,
As such, the general rule is that the JDR Judge early neutral evaluation, or mediation to the trial
shall not preside over the trial of the same case judge or to any other person.
when mediation did not succeed.
All JDR conferences shall be conducted in private.
In multiple sala courts, if the case is not resolved
during JDR, it shall be raffled to another branch, The JDR judge may, however, confer in
where the rest of the judicial proceedings up to confidence with the mediator who previously
judgment shall be held. The judge for that stage shall mediated the case, merely for the purpose of
be called the trial judge. determining unresolved issues.

Any incidents or motions filed during the first stage The pilot-test shall apply to the following cases:
shall be dealt with by the JDR judge at his discretion.
(1) All civil cases, settlement of estates, and cases
In single sala courts, the case shall be transferred covered by the Rule on Summary Procedure, except
for mediation to the nearest court (or pair court, if those which by law may not be compromised;
any), since only mediation is involved.
ADR (based on ATTY HIGUITS OUTLINE)-CHARMAGNE FERRERS REVIEWER 128

(2) Cases cognizable by the Lupong Tagapamayapa and


those cases that may be referred to it by the judge
under Section 408. Chapter VII of the Republic Act No.
7160, otherwise known as the 1991 Local Government
Code;

(3) The civil aspect of BP 22 cases;

(4) The civil aspect of quasi-offenses under Title 14 of


the Revised Penal Code; and

(5) The civil aspect of Estafa, Libel, and Theft.

A party who fails to appear for mediation or JDR


conference may be imposed the appropriate sanctions
as provided for in Rule 18 of the Rules of Court and the
relevant issuances of the Supreme Court.

A recommendation to impose sanctions shall be made


to the JDR judge by the mediator before whom the
absence took place, upon the request of the present
party.

If all parties are absent despite due notice, the


mediator shall motu proprio recommend the
imposition of proper sanctions upon all of them,
including dismissal of the case.

Among others, the JDR judge may require the non-


appearing party to reimburse the appearing party
his costs, including attorney's fees for that day,
up to treble the amount incurred payable on or
before the next mediation session.

A party who appears without the required


authorization may be similarly sanctioned

If settlement is reached, the parties, with assistance of


their counsel, shall draft the compromise agreement
for approval of the court by judgment upon a
compromise.

Where compliance with the compromise agreement is


forthwith made or the claim is otherwise settled, the
parties shall instead submit a satisfaction of claims
or mutual withdrawal of the complaint and
counterclaim upon which the Court shall enter an
order dismissing the case.

Вам также может понравиться